Selected quad for the lemma: rest_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
rest_n aaron_n church_n observe_v 14 3 6.0146 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A22507 A commentarie vpon the fourth booke of Moses, called Numbers Containing, the foundation of the church and common-wealth of the Israelites, while they walked and wandered in the vvildernesse. Laying before vs the vnchangeable loue of God promised and exhibited to this people ... Heerein also the reader shall finde more then fiue hundred theologicall questions, decided and determined by William Attersoll, minister of the word. Attersoll, William, d. 1640.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Pathway to Canaan.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Continuation of the exposition of the booke of Numbers. 1618 (1618) STC 893; ESTC S106852 2,762,938 1,336

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o body_n of_o man_n every_o member_n have_v his_o proper_a function_n so_o that_o if_o one_o shall_v usurp_v to_o do_v all_o or_o all_o to_o do_v one_o only_o there_o will_v follow_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o body_n for_o the_o hand_n labour_v for_o the_o whole_a the_o eye_n see_v and_o the_o ear_n hear_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o part_n the_o mouth_n receive_v meat_n and_o deliver_v it_o to_o the_o stomach_n the_o stomach_n employ_v it_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n every_o member_n must_v do_v his_o own_o duty_n and_o employ_v himself_o to_o the_o common_a profit_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o to_o omit_v these_o observe_v that_o the_o levite_n be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n to_o assist_v they_o and_o consequent_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n from_o whence_o learn_v this_o doctrine_n that_o a_o good_a minister_n be_v a_o special_a gift_n of_o god_n god_n doctrine_n a_o good_a minister_n be_v a_o special_a blessing_n of_o god_n and_o a_o special_a token_n of_o his_o favour_n which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n the_o lord_n be_v many_o way_n gracious_a unto_o his_o church_n and_o pour_v out_o many_o blessing_n upon_o it_o howbeit_o none_o more_o excellent_a or_o worthy_a then_o to_o give_v this_o blessing_n which_o now_o we_o speak_v off_o to_o send_v faithful_a teacher_n deuteronomy_n chapter_n 18._o verse_n 18._o i_o will_v raise_v they_o a_o prophet_n esay_n chapter_n 66._o verse_n 19_o 31._o jeremy_n chapter_n 3._o verse_n 14_o 15._o matthew_n chapter_n 23._o verse_n 34._o when_o god_n begin_v to_o plant_v a_o settle_a state_n of_o religion_n among_o his_o people_n he_o command_v that_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n shall_v be_v sanctify_v to_o be_v the_o public_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n show_v thereby_o that_o religion_n will_v not_o be_v uphold_v without_o some_o special_a mean_n and_o instrument_n to_o direct_v the_o people_n therein_o the_o reason_n be_v evident_a first_o they_o be_v his_o only_a gift_n because_o he_o be_v reason_n 1_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n as_o also_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n wherein_o they_o exercise_v their_o gift_n who_o then_o shall_v reap_v down_o the_o corn_n when_o the_o field_n be_v white_a unto_o the_o harvest_n john_n chapter_n 4._o verse_n 35._o and_o gather_v it_o into_o the_o barn_n but_o such_o labourer_n as_o he_o shall_v set_v on_o work_n matth._n 9.37_o second_o he_o only_o be_v able_a to_o furnish_v they_o reason_n 2_o with_o sufficiens_fw-la gift_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n therefore_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n ascend_v up_o on_o high_a he_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o triumph_n when_o he_o ride_v in_o his_o chariot_n as_o a_o glorious_a conqueror_n and_o lead_v all_o his_o enemy_n even_o captivity_n captive_a as_o it_o be_v in_o chain_n of_o iron_n ephes_n 4.11_o 12._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o function_n and_o gift_n for_o the_o ministry_n be_v particular_o name_v in_o the_o most_o gracious_a promise_n which_o god_n have_v make_v of_o the_o best_a thing_n to_o bestow_v on_o the_o church_n under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n esay_n 59.20_o 21._o joel_n 2.28_o 29._o reason_n 3_o three_o the_o ministry_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o salvation_n for_o how_o shall_v we_o believe_v without_o a_o preacher_n roman_n 10.14_o for_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o hear_n be_v necessary_a to_o faith_n faith_n to_o prayer_n and_o prayer_n to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o also_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o be_v preach_v that_o so_o man_n may_v hear_v use_v 1_o the_o use_n follow_v first_o as_o good_a pastor_n be_v token_n of_o god_n love_n to_o his_o people_n which_o do_v good_a in_o their_o place_n and_o labour_n to_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n so_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o have_v evil_a and_o ignorant_a pastor_n be_v token_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o judgement_n as_o saul_n be_v give_v to_o the_o israelite_n in_o judgement_n to_o be_v a_o plague_n unto_o they_o these_o win_v soul_n to_o satan_n and_o increase_v his_o kingdom_n for_o a_o evil_a minister_n be_v the_o devil_n collector_n collectour_n a_o evil_a minister_n be_v the_o devil_n collectour_n he_o gather_v soul_n for_o he_o but_o he_o scatter_v they_o from_o god_n or_o else_o i_o may_v call_v they_o the_o devil_n shepherd_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o keep_v his_o sheep_n for_o as_o god_n say_v i_o will_v give_v you_o pastor_n according_a to_o my_o heart_n which_o shall_v feed_v you_o with_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n so_o the_o devil_n say_v i_o will_v give_v you_o idol_n pastor_n according_a to_o my_o heart_n that_o shall_v fill_v you_o full_a of_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n these_o supply_n the_o place_n of_o true_a pastor_n but_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o for_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n can_v feed_v in_o their_o pasture_n they_o be_v so_o bare_a and_o so_o barren_a that_o they_o can_v live_v upon_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o that_o live_v under_o they_o can_v thrive_v happy_a it_o be_v for_o the_o sheep_n if_o either_o such_o shepherd_n be_v remoove_v from_o the_o sheep_n or_o the_o sheep_n from_o such_o shepherd_n such_o drone_n seek_v nothing_o but_o their_o own_o ease_n who_o never_o consider_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v a_o call_n of_o great_a work_n and_o labour_n these_o may_v be_v minister_n for_o the_o devil_n tooth_n or_o after_o man_n heart_n but_o they_o can_v be_v after_o god_n own_o heart_n they_o be_v blind_a guide_n which_o run_v before_o the_o lord_n send_v they_o he_o take_v no_o pleasure_n either_o in_o these_o silly_a shepherd_n or_o in_o those_o foolish_a people_n that_o be_v content_v with_o they_o these_o be_v such_o merchant_n as_o gain_v many_o soul_n to_o the_o devil_n coffer_n by_o do_v nothing_o other_o merchant_n gain_v by_o compass_v sea_n and_o land_n 23.24_o matth._n 23.24_o and_o travel_v far_o and_o near_o by_o labour_v and_o take_v great_a pain_n but_o these_o sit_v idle_a all_o the_o day_n long_o they_o labour_v not_o in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n and_o yet_o by_o their_o ease_n and_o idleness_n they_o enrich_v the_o devil_n kingdom_n and_o bring_v he_o in_o many_o thousand_o soul_n these_o be_v the_o devil_n factour_n factor_n idle_n minister_n be_v the_o devil_n factor_n by_o they_o he_o get_v &_o and_z grow_v rich_a the_o devil_n traffic_n be_v all_o for_o soul_n he_o care_v for_o no_o other_o merchandise_n now_o the_o idle_a and_o ignorant_a minister_n be_v his_o factor_n who_o send_v they_o in_o these_o ware_n by_o heap_n and_o by_o throng_n he_o ship_v they_o with_o great_a pleasure_n and_o put_v himself_o in_o the_o same_o bottom_n and_o then_o ship_n and_o all_o go_v to_o the_o devil_n who_o sit_v ready_a in_o his_o count_a house_n to_o receive_v they_o all_o and_o to_o give_v they_o such_o entertainment_n as_o he_o have_v to_o give_v woe_n unto_o such_o factour_n woe_n unto_o such_o people_n woe_n unto_o such_o deceiver_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v so_o deceive_v nevertheless_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o consider_v now_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n be_v enamour_v of_o they_o though_o they_o be_v the_o great_a &_o most_o dangerous_a enemy_n that_o they_o have_v because_o howsoever_o they_o may_v otherwise_o make_v much_o of_o they_o yet_o indeed_o they_o withhold_v all_o succour_n and_o sustenance_n from_o they_o and_o consequent_o starve_v they_o and_o kill_v they_o second_o there_o be_v great_a punishment_n attend_v use_v 2_o upon_o the_o contempt_n of_o this_o excellent_a gift_n deut._n 18.19.10_o 11._o 2_o chro._n 36.15_o 16._o 2_o thes_n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o and_o 2.9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o this_o meet_v with_o sundry_a abuse_n that_o savour_v ranke_o of_o the_o reject_v of_o this_o great_a mercy_n and_o therefore_o let_v such_o take_v heed_n that_o god_n do_v not_o also_o reject_v they_o woe_n then_o to_o the_o anabaptist_n the_o family_n of_o love_n and_o such_o like_a enthusiaste_n who_o refuse_v the_o ministry_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o revelation_n whereas_o the_o lord_n have_v reveal_v unto_o we_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o therefore_o the_o word_n have_v reveal_v that_o their_o revelation_n be_v devilish_a delusion_n whereby_o they_o be_v seduce_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o destruction_n woe_n also_o unto_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o besotted_a christian_n who_o think_v their_o home_n devotion_n enough_o and_o their_o own_o read_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n not_o consider_v that_o in_o their_o read_n they_o want_v a_o guide_n to_o interpret_v the_o
resurrection_n upon_o this_o day_n john_n 20._o verse_n 26._o upon_o this_o day_n do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n use_v 1_o the_o use_v follow_v the_o sanctify_a separate_a and_o keep_v of_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v a_o moral_a duty_n charge_v upon_o every_o soul_n whatsoever_o &_o wheresoever_o we_o be_v in_o what_o state_n and_o condition_n soever_o in_o bondage_n and_o exile_n upon_o the_o land_n or_o sea_n in_o sickness_n or_o in_o health_n at_o home_o or_o abroad_o with_o ourselves_o or_o with_o other_o whether_o we_o be_v high_a or_o low_o prince_n or_o subject_a master_n or_o servant_n bond_n or_o free_a male_a or_o female_a all_o person_n must_v know_v that_o this_o day_n must_v be_v sanctify_v unto_o the_o holy_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o be_v spend_v in_o the_o meditation_n of_o holy_a thing_n it_o be_v not_o as_o some_o profane_a person_n have_v say_v that_o favour_n of_o nothing_o but_o the_o world_n that_o rich_a man_n may_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n but_o poor_a man_n can_v for_o god_n will_v have_v the_o poor_a keep_v holy_a this_o day_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rich_a as_o with_o he_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n so_o in_o give_v his_o law_n he_o respect_v not_o person_n we_o have_v not_o one_o of_o the_o commandment_n for_o the_o poor_a and_o another_o for_o the_o rich_a but_o they_o belong_v to_o all_o as_o he_o be_v god_n of_o all_o and_o will_v be_v serve_v of_o all_o moral_a the_o sabbath_n be_v moral_a and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o moral_a duty_n than_o we_o shall_v have_v but_o nine_o commandment_n that_o bind_v perpetual_o whereas_o they_o be_v often_o call_v the_o ten_o word_n exodus_fw-la chap._n 34_o verse_n 28._o deut._n 14.13_o and_o 10_o 4._o and_o christ_n show_v he_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n but_o to_o keep_v it_o and_o fulfil_v it_o math._n 5_o 17._o again_o he_o say_v he_o that_o shall_v break_v one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o the_o commandment_n and_o shall_v teach_v man_n so_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n verse_n 19_o he_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o of_o it_o and_o have_v no_o place_n in_o it_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v object_n we_o keep_v not_o the_o same_o day_n that_o the_o jew_n do_v they_o observe_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n we_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n why_o then_o be_v this_o day_n change_v and_o who_o change_v it_o and_o whether_o may_v it_o be_v change_v again_o answer_n i_o answer_v first_o touch_v the_o first_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o change_n be_v to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o jewish_a and_o christian_a sabbath_n which_o can_v not_o be_v so_o fit_o do_v but_o by_o change_n of_o the_o day_n change_v why_o the_o sabbath_n be_v change_v second_o to_o keep_v a_o memorial_n of_o the_o day_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o as_o the_o seven_o day_n keep_v a_o memorial_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o creation_n so_o do_v this_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n of_o our_o redemption_n as_o great_a a_o work_n yea_o great_a than_o the_o former_a for_o it_o be_v more_o to_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o hell_n then_o to_o create_v we_o out_o of_o nothing_o esay_n 66_o 24._o three_o to_o free_v the_o church_n from_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o take_v from_o it_o they_o yoke_n that_o lie_v as_o a_o heavy_a burden_n on_o the_o neck_n of_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n act_n chap._n 15._o verse_n 10._o which_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v for_o when_o this_o day_n be_v change_v it_o be_v no_o more_o tie_v to_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n which_o be_v solemnize_v with_o many_o ceremony_n belong_v necessary_o unto_o it_o the_o jew_n be_v tie_v to_o a_o strict_a and_o rigorous_a kind_n of_o rest_n they_o may_v not_o kindle_v a_o fire_n throughout_o their_o habitation_n exod._n chap_v 35._o verse_n 3._o it_o be_v also_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o everlasting_a rest_n of_o god_n child_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n esay_n 66_o 23._o heb._n 4_o 9_o it_o be_v observe_v in_o remembrance_n of_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n which_o fall_v out_o that_o day_n deut._n 5_o 15._o exodus_fw-la 11._o it_o be_v tie_v precise_o to_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n and_o celebrate_v with_o sundry_a set_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n number_n 28._o verse_n 9_o 10._o nevertheless_o there_o be_v a_o sabbath_n moral_a and_o perpetual_a a_o time_n to_o be_v set_v apart_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n sabba●_n who_o alter●_n the_o sabba●_n the_o next_o question_n be_v who_o alter_v it_o i_o answer_v christ_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o change_n the_o apostle_n often_o teach_v that_o whatsoever_o they_o teach_v they_o receive_v it_o from_o christ_n they_o learn_v it_o at_o his_o hand_n before_o either_o by_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n or_o by_o revelation_n of_o his_o spirit_n but_o the_o apostle_n enjoin_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n to_o be_v keep_v as_o a_o sabbath_n of_o rest_n 1_o cor._n 16_o 1._o the_o church_n every_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n make_v a_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a which_o follow_v the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n the_o offer_v up_o of_o prayer_n and_o the_o receyve_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o a_o fruit_n of_o they_o act_n 2._o ver_fw-la 42._o wherein_o observe_v by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o benefit_n good_a and_o comfort_n of_o the_o poor_a not_o for_o their_o hurt_n or_o hindrance_n whereby_o as_o god_n be_v glorify_v so_o the_o poor_a be_v encourage_v to_o tender_v their_o service_n to_o god_n this_o day_n and_o the_o mouth_n of_o those_o carnal_a man_n be_v stop_v that_o will_v have_v the_o rich_a keep_v the_o sabbath_n but_o not_o the_o poor_a if_o any_o say_v collection_n for_o the_o poor_a be_v lawful_a object_n and_o may_v be_v make_v any_o day_n as_o well_o as_o on_o a_o sabbath_n i_o answer_v answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o then_o collection_n be_v make_v but_o this_o be_v make_v a_o apostolical_a ordinance_n and_o institution_n to_o be_v do_v that_o day_n especial_o for_o he_o command_v the_o corinthian_n to_o observe_v it_o that_o day_n as_o he_o have_v ordain_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n 1_o corinth_n 16_o 1_o 2._o so_o then_o because_o he_o give_v such_o order_n we_o may_v conclude_v it_o to_o be_v a_o ordinance_n the_o apostle_n also_o assemble_v themselves_o upon_o this_o day_n for_o performance_n of_o divine_a duty_n act_n 20._o verse_n 7._o they_o keep_v this_o day_n for_o a_o sabbath_n neither_o keep_v they_o orderly_o any_o other_o save_v when_o they_o come_v into_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v so_o addict_v unto_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o they_o will_v meet_v upon_o no_o other_o day_n beside_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n that_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o teach_v his_o disciple_n whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o act_n 1._o verse_n 3._o but_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o sabbath_n belong_v to_o god_n kingdom_n the_o last_o question_n remain_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n to_o change_v the_o day_n again_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o at_o the_o first_o change_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n direct_v by_o christ_n who_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n math._n 12_o 8._o so_o it_o can_v receive_v no_o far_o change_v without_o he_o or_o they_o but_o if_o the_o church_n have_v this_o power_n them_z the_o church_n may_v well_o be_v say_v to_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n again_o the_o time_n and_o season_n be_v in_o god_n hand_n act._n 1_o 6._o but_o they_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o treasure_n to_o dispense_v if_o it_o may_v dispose_v &_o transpose_v the_o sabbath_n at_o her_o pleasure_n again_o one_o day_n to_o be_v keep_v in_o seven_o be_v moral_a &_o perpetual_a otherwise_o if_o once_o we_o depart_v from_o this_o simplicity_n that_o we_o be_v not_o tie_v of_o necessity_n unto_o it_o a_o man_n may_v say_v that_o one_o day_n in_o seven_o week_n or_o in_o seven_o year_n be_v enough_o and_o so_o at_o length_n it_o shall_v be_v say_v we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o meet_v together_o public_o above_o one_o day_n in_o a_o hundred_o year_n therefore_o i_o set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o unchangeable_a rule_n that_o the_o observation_n of_o one_o day_n in_o seven_o not_o in_o five_o or_o one_o in_o fifteen_o but_o one_o in_o seven_o
be_v cut_v off_o by_o death_n do_v renew_v the_o levitical_a priesthood_n and_o labour_n to_o raise_v it_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n which_o have_v long_o ago_o be_v bury_v with_o honour_n for_o this_o be_v common_a to_o they_o both_o to_o end_v their_o day_n and_o leave_v their_o priesthood_n to_o other_o so_o that_o the_o dart_n which_o the_o apostle_n cast_v against_o the_o leviticall_a priesthood_n pierce_v and_o perish_v the_o very_a heart_n of_o the_o popish_a priesthood_n when_o he_o say_v and_o prove_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o priest_n but_o christ_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n 24._o heb._n 7_o 23_o 24._o because_o he_o continue_v for_o ever_o consider_v that_o the_o multitude_n of_o priest_n and_o succession_n of_o they_o one_o after_o another_o arise_v from_o the_o imperfection_n and_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v continual_o by_o death_n take_v away_o if_o then_o the_o upstart_n priest_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n will_v be_v priest_n proper_o they_o can_v be_v priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n as_o they_o wretched_o and_o blasphemous_o claim_v themselves_o to_o be_v who_o be_v both_o king_n and_o priest_n 5._o heb_fw-mi 7_o 5._o neither_o can_v they_o be_v successor_n of_o christ_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v none_o to_o succeed_v he_o for_o if_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o continue_v to_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n after_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v because_o it_o be_v perfect_a and_o all-sufficient_a yea_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o that_o go_v before_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o popish_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o addition_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a as_o a_o rot_a and_o ragged_a patch_n to_o a_o new_a garment_n can_v stand_v but_o be_v to_o be_v throw_v down_o and_o abolish_v like_o a_o abominable_a idol_n verse_n 29._o all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n weep_v for_o aaron_n thirty_o day_n when_o the_o congregation_n see_v that_o aaron_n be_v dead_a the_o last_o point_n observe_v in_o this_o chapter_n be_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o people_n after_o the_o death_n of_o aaron_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a pillar_n and_o protector_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o true_a religion_n among_o the_o israelite_n they_o mourn_v for_o he_o not_o a_o day_n or_o a_o week_n but_o a_o whole_a month_n to_o declare_v what_o a_o sensible_a feel_n they_o have_v of_o the_o incomparable_a loss_n of_o the_o church_n we_o learn_v hereby_o that_o when_o the_o chief_a member_n stay_n prop_n ●_o doctrine_n when_o the_o chief_a p●_n of_o the_o c●_n be_v take_v a●_n the_o rest_n a●_n be_v gree●_n 1_o thess_n 4_o ●_o and_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n be_v take_v away_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o part_n be_v to_o be_v humble_v and_o touch_v to_o the_o quick_a for_o the_o same_o true_a it_o be_v a_o measure_n in_o mourning_n and_o lamentation_n be_v to_o be_v use_v that_o we_o be_v not_o sorry_a as_o man_n without_o hope_n yet_o by_o this_o example_n we_o see_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o mourn_v for_o the_o dead_a &_o the_o great_a loss_n the_o church_n have_v receyve_v the_o great_a lamentation_n and_o grief_n ought_v to_o be_v express_v this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o god_n servant_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n proportion_v their_o sorrow_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o loss_n we_o see_v ge._n 50_o 1_o 10_o 11._o when_o god_n call_v jacob_n to_o himself_o out_o of_o this_o world_n a_o father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o great_a light_n that_o shine_v not_o only_o within_o the_o door_n of_o his_o own_o family_n but_o in_o the_o darkness_n of_o egypt_n he_o be_v great_o and_o exceed_o lament_v for_o the_o space_n of_o seventy_o day_n so_o that_o the_o canaanite_n say_v this_o be_v a_o great_a mourning_n unto_o the_o egyptian_n so_o when_o moses_n the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n die_v like_a unto_o who_o there_o arise_v not_o a_o prophet_n in_o israel_n unto_o who_o god_n speak_v not_o by_o vision_n or_o dream_n but_o face_n to_o face_n as_o a_o man_n talk_v with_o his_o friend_n deut._n 34_o 8._o the_o child_n of_o israel_n mourn_v for_o he_o thirty_o day_n who_o he_o have_v guide_v with_o a_o fatherly_a care_n many_o year_n so_o when_o samuel_n another_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n die_v 1_o sam_n 25_o 1._o all_o israel_n assemble_v and_o mourn_v for_o he_o and_o bury_v he_o in_o his_o own_o house_n at_o ramah_n when_o god_n take_v away_o good_a king_n josiah_n like_v to_o who_o there_o be_v no_o king_n before_o he_o that_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o his_o soul_n 2d_o 2_o king_n 2d_o and_o with_o all_o his_o might_n according_a to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n who_o bow_v neither_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a who_o remember_v his_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o youth_n and_o honour_a god_n with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o his_o life_n all_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n mourn_v for_o he_o 2_o chron._n 35_o 23_o 24._o yea_o jeremy_n lament_v josiah_n and_o all_o the_o sing_a man_n and_o sing_a woman_n mourn_v for_o he_o in_o their_o lamentation_n and_o make_v the_o same_o for_o a_o ordinance_n to_o israel_n &_o behold_v they_o be_v write_v in_o the_o lamentation_n but_o touch_v jehoiakim_n the_o son_n of_o josia_n who_o degenerate_v from_o his_o father_n &_o walk_v not_o in_o his_o way_n 19_o 〈◊〉_d 22_o 1●_n 19_o it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v not_o lament_v he_o saying_n ah_o my_o brother_n or_o ah_o my_o sister_n neither_o shall_v they_o mourn_v for_o he_o say_v ah_o lord_n or_o ah_o his_o glory_n he_o shall_v be_v bury_v as_o a_o ass_n be_v bury_v even_o draw_v and_o cast_v forth_o without_o the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o like_a comparison_n we_o see_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n when_o as_o stephen_n be_v stone_v a_o faithful_a witness_n of_o christ_n a_o worthy_a member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o constant_a defender_n of_o the_o faith_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 8_o 2._o certain_a man_n carry_v he_o to_o be_v bury_v and_o make_v great_a lamentation_n for_o he_o but_o when_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n fill_v with_o satan_n keep_v away_o part_n of_o the_o price_n of_o their_o possession_n tempt_v the_o spirit_n and_o lie_v unto_o god_n fall_v down_o and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n 10._o 〈◊〉_d 5_o 5_o 10._o young_a man_n arise_v take_v they_o up_o and_o bury_v they_o but_o no_o mention_n of_o any_o tear_n or_o lamentation_n much_o less_o of_o any_o great_a lamentation_n make_v for_o they_o god_n sweep_v they_o away_o as_o dung_n from_o the_o earth_n for_o their_o hypocrisy_n but_o the_o church_n lament_v not_o the_o death_n of_o these_o wicked_a person_n so_o then_o to_o omit_v many_o other_o example_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v we_o see_v that_o howsoever_o man_n may_v be_v mourn_v for_o in_o a_o natural_a affection_n &_o compassion_n by_o their_o friend_n and_o kinsfolk_n yet_o chief_o and_o principal_o we_o be_v to_o bewail_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o church_n when_o such_o be_v take_v away_o as_o may_v do_v good_a service_n to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n reason_n 1_o this_o truth_n appear_v by_o good_a force_n of_o reason_n first_o the_o minister_n be_v as_o the_o chariot_n &_o horseman_n of_o israel_n in_o their_o ministry_n that_o be_v the_o strength_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n therefore_o elisha_n see_v eliah_n take_v up_o by_o a_o whirlwind_n into_o heaven_n cry_v out_o 12._o king_n ●_o 12._o my_o father_n my_o father_n the_o chariot_n of_o israel_n &_o the_o horseman_n thereof_o and_o as_o elisha_n say_v of_o eliah_n so_o do_v joash_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n of_o elisha_n for_o be_v sick_a of_o his_o sickness_n whereof_o he_o die_v the_o king_n come_v down_o unto_o he_o 14._o king_n 13_o 14._o and_o weep_v upon_o his_o face_n and_o say_v o_o my_o father_n my_o father_n the_o chariot_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o horseman_n of_o the_o same_o thus_o speak_v the_o king_n himself_o to_o the_o prophet_n and_o these_o honourable_a title_n he_o give_v unto_o he_o and_o no_o marvel_n for_o they_o fight_v and_o bend_v their_o force_n against_o swear_v blasphemy_n contempt_n of_o god_n word_n profane_v of_o his_o sabbath_n whoredom_n drunkenness_n idleness_n covetousness_n and_o such_o like_a as_o lay_v we_o open_v to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n these_o and_o such_o like_a sin_n be_v they_o that_o weaken_v the_o land_n and_o lay_v it_o naked_a to_o the_o invasion_n of_o enemy_n 25._o 〈◊〉_d 32_o 25._o as_o appear_v exo._n 32_o 25._o moses_n see_v that_o by_o their_o idolatry_n the_o people_n be_v naked_a for_o aaron_n have_v make_v they_o naked_a unto_o shame_n among_o
a_o commentary_n upon_o the_o four_o book_n of_o moses_n 〈…〉_o number_n contain_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o israelite_n while_o they_o walk_v and_o wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n lay_v before_o we_o the_o unchangeable_a love_n of_o god_n promise_v and_o exhibit_v to_o this_o people_n the_o comely_a order_n establish_v and_o observe_v among_o they_o sundry_a example_n of_o his_o horrible_a judgement_n against_o obstinate_a sinner_n the_o fatherly_a chastisement_n and_o correction_n of_o the_o faithful_a offend_n and_o the_o dangerous_a plotting_n and_o devilish_a policy_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n be_v detect_v and_o discover_v wherein_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o divinity_n be_v handle_v touch_v matter_n dogmatic_a of_o god_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n of_o faith_n and_o justification_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o sabbath_n of_o magistrate_n and_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o prayer_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o set_a form_n of_o tithe_n and_o impropriation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a and_o in_o special_a of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n of_o duelle_n and_o duelist_n of_o excommunication_n of_o repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n of_o restitution_n of_o war_n and_o of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o cousin_n german_n ceremonial_a of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n and_o of_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o the_o water_n of_o jealousy_n of_o the_o vow_n of_o the_o nazarite_n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o jewish_a feast_n of_o the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n of_o the_o new_a moon_n of_o afflict_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o passeover_n and_o pentecost_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o urim_n and_o thummim_v of_o the_o seven_o lamp_n and_o the_o make_n of_o the_o two_o silver_n trumpet_n of_o the_o pillar_n of_o fire_n and_o the_o cloud_n of_o the_o meat_n offer_v and_o drink_n offer_v with_o the_o use_n of_o they_o all_o towards_o ourselves_o together_o with_o a_o description_n of_o sundry_a weight_n and_o measure_v use_v of_o the_o jew_n polemicall_a or_o controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o as_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o note_n of_o it_o of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n of_o freewill_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n of_o justification_n by_o work_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o vow_n of_o auricular_a confession_n of_o relic_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o temple_n of_o taper_n and_o wax_n candle_n of_o sanctuary_n and_o of_o image_n and_o idolatry_n herein_o also_o the_o reader_n shall_v find_v more_o than_o five_o hundred_o theological_a question_n decide_v and_o determine_v by_o william_n attersoll_n minister_n of_o the_o word_n london_n print_v by_o william_n jaggard_n 1618._o to_o the_o right_n worshipful_a sir_n walter_n covert_a knight_n one_o of_o his_o majesty_n justice_n of_o the_o peace_n in_o the_o county_n of_o sussex_n and_o to_o the_o right_n worshipful_a the_o lady_n jane_n covert_a his_o wife_n grace_n and_o peace_n from_o jesus_n christ._n i_o undertake_v right_a worshipful_a in_o this_o work_n to_o expound_v one_o of_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n treasury_n commit_v to_o write_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o one_o of_o the_o best_a workman_n and_o one_o of_o the_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n and_o howsoever_o sundry_a parcel_n thereof_o may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o view_n to_o offer_v unto_o we_o little_a profit_n as_o contain_v only_o sundry_a name_n of_o person_n and_o place_n which_o may_v be_v think_v little_a to_o concern_v we_o yet_o as_o the_o whole_a scripture_n give_v by_o inspiration_n be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o correction_n and_o for_o instruction_n 〈◊〉_d righteousness_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n 16_o 2_o tim._n 3_o 16_o rom._n 1●_n 4_o so_o if_o we_o look_v into_o this_o present_a parcel_n with_o a_o single_a eye_n and_o a_o pure_a heart_n void_a of_o partiality_n and_o a_o prejudicate_a opinion_n we_o shall_v oftentimes_o find_v much_o substance_n to_o lie_v hide_v under_o shadow_n and_o as_o it_o be_v rich_a mine_n where_o the_o soil_n may_v be_v take_v to_o be_v barren_a and_o as_o this_o book_n bear_v in_o the_o front_n of_o it_o the_o name_n of_o number_n so_o it_o have_v this_o peculiar_a above_o the_o rest_n that_o it_o lay_v before_o we_o the_o number_v of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o excellent_a and_o exquisite_a order_n that_o god_n command_v to_o be_v observe_v among_o they_o in_o their_o tent_n in_o their_o march_v in_o their_o remove_n in_o the_o unfolding_n and_o wrap_v up_o of_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o in_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n that_o attend_v upon_o it_o all_o art_n and_o science_n before_o they_o can_v be_v learn_v must_v be_v reduce_v into_o order_n and_o method_n there_o be_v a_o order_n in_o god_n himself_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n for_o albeit_o all_o the_o person_n be_v coeternall_a and_o coequal_a and_o the_o essence_n itself_o of_o the_o deity_n undivisible_a yet_o there_o be_v the_o first_o the_o second_o and_o the_o three_o person_n and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o creation_n and_o work_n of_o god_n from_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o elect_a angel_n that_o do_v his_o commandment_n and_o hearken_v unto_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o word_n 20_o psal_n 103_o 20_o have_v a_o order_n among_o they_o there_o be_v throne_n and_o dominion_n power_n and_o principality_n ephes_n 1_o 21._o col._n 1_o 16._o and_o a_o archangel_n that_o at_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v blow_v the_o trumpet_n 1_o thess_n 4_o 16._o and_o as_o it_o be_v among_o the_o angel_n so_o it_o be_v among_o the_o saint_n the_o soul_n of_o just_a man_n perfect_v albeit_o all_o have_v enough_o and_o none_o of_o they_o any_o want_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o glory_n inasmuch_o as_o every_o man_n shall_v receyve_v his_o own_o reward_n according_a to_o his_o own_o labour_n 1_o cor._n 3_o 8._o dan._n 12_o 3._o the_o star_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o magnitude_n but_o there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n another_o of_o the_o moon_n and_o another_o of_o the_o star_n for_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o star_n in_o glory_n so_o also_o be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 1_o cor._n 15_o 41_o 42._o gen._n 1_o 16_o 17._o psal_n 136_o 7_o 8.9_o thus_o it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o work_v beneath_o that_o god_n may_v every_o where_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o order_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 33._o some_o creature_n have_v only_o a_o be_v some_o have_v be_v and_o life_n other_o be_v life_n and_o sense_n and_o other_o beside_o all_o these_o have_v reason_n and_o understanding_n a_o camp_n well_o discipline_v be_v a_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o good_a order_n he_o that_o will_v order_v a_o battle_n aright_o say_v vegetius_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o dust_n 14._o veget._n cap._n 14._o to_o the_o wind_n because_o the_o sun_n and_o dust_n hinder_v the_o sight_n and_o a_o contrary_a wind_n weaken_v the_o blow_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v rule_v by_o order_n while_o there_o be_v some_o to_o teach_v and_o some_o to_o hear_v neither_o may_v any_o of_o these_o seem_v strange_a forasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o order_n even_o in_o the_o place_n of_o all_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n even_o in_o hell_n itself_o prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n matth._n 25_o 41._o 41._o matth._n 25_o 41._o for_o there_o also_o be_v principality_n and_o power_n and_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n eph._n 6_o ●2_n and_o among_o these_o one_o be_v chief_a and_o principal_a as_o it_o be_v a_o head_n over_o this_o body_n call_v therefore_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n matth._n 12.24_o so_o then_o we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o creator_n and_o in_o the_o creature_n in_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o heaven_n in_o the_o camp_n in_o the_o church_n yea_o in_o the_o place_n of_o darkness_n and_o desolation_n itself_o there_o be_v ●●me_n order_n from_o whence_o spring_v the_o common_a proverb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v there_o be_v nothing_o so_o profitable_a as_o order_v when_o moses_n have_v receyve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n and_o publish_v it_o among_o the_o people_n and_o have_v finish_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o ark_n and_o sanctuary_n he_o muster_v all_o the_o
wither_v and_o dry_a wand_n and_o on_o every_o rod_n the_o name_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o tribe_n be_v write_v and_o aaron_n name_n on_o that_o of_o levi_n it_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o rod_n of_o aaron_n receyve_v by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n a_o vegetable_a soul_n for_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n one_o only_a night_n it_o have_v upon_o it_o bud_n blossom_n and_o ripe_a almond_n whereby_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v the_o call_n of_o aaron_n confirm_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o conspirator_n stop_v &_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o israel_n persuade_v to_o rest_n themselves_o upon_o the_o ordinance_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o settle_v among_o they_o it_o be_v almost_o endless_a to_o rehearse_v all_o the_o other_o murmur_n against_o moses_n and_o provocation_n against_o god_n for_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o mountain_n hor_n after_o the_o death_n of_o aaron_n number_n 33._o verse_n 38_o who_o die_v in_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o five_o month_n of_o the_o forty_o year_n after_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o egypt_n all_o the_o people_n murmur_v most_o violent_o against_o moses_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o scarcity_n of_o water_n when_o neither_o the_o punishment_n by_o fire_n from_o heaven_n above_o they_o nor_o the_o open_n of_o the_o earth_n under_o they_o nor_o and_z swallow_v of_o they_o up_o nor_o the_o often_o and_o sudden_a pestilence_n that_o seize_v upon_o they_o nor_o any_o miracle_n former_o show_v among_o they_o neither_o the_o love_n or_o wrath_n of_o god_n can_v prevail_v any_o long_o with_o this_o stubborn_a and_o rebellious_a people_n then_o while_o their_o belly_n be_v fill_v and_o their_o appetite_n satisfy_v numb_a 20._o but_o in_o stead_n of_o seek_v for_o help_n and_o relief_n at_o god_n hand_n in_o their_o necessity_n when_o they_o suffer_v hunger_n or_o thirst_n or_o any_o other_o want_n they_o repine_v and_o repent_v of_o their_o estate_n cast_v into_o his_o tooth_n who_o least_o of_o all_o deserve_v it_o all_o their_o misadventure_n and_o albeit_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o forty_o year_n wherein_o all_o travail_n trouble_n and_o misery_n be_v to_o take_v end_n and_o that_o they_o be_v even_o in_o sight_n of_o the_o land_n promise_v yet_o again_o they_o tempt_v god_n as_o obstinate_o as_o in_o former_a time_n and_o neither_o trust_v his_o promise_n nor_o fear_v his_o judgement_n nor_o regard_v his_o miracle_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o think_v by_o way_n of_o justification_n of_o ourselves_o or_o condemnation_n of_o israel_n that_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n better_o than_o they_o or_o they_o a_o worse_a people_n than_o ourselves_o for_o it_o have_v always_o be_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o common_a sort_n to_o wax_v weary_a of_o present_a thing_n and_o to_o desire_v some_o change_n and_o alteration_n the_o multitude_n as_o polybius_n do_v not_o unfit_o speak_v be_v like_o the_o sea_n where_o a_o small_a gale_n of_o wind_n cause_v a_o great_a tempest_n legate_n cicer._n pro_fw-la domo_fw-la sva_fw-la ut_fw-la demost_a in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr fa●s_fw-fr legate_n they_o be_v changeable_a and_o unconstant_a and_o as_o variable_a in_o their_o opinion_n as_o the_o weather_n be_v and_o so_o often_o as_o i_o remember_v the_o dislike_n and_o discontent_n of_o this_o people_n with_o such_o governor_n in_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n as_o god_n have_v set_v over_o they_o who_o have_v they_o be_v change_v and_o other_o place_v in_o their_o room_n will_v have_v like_v they_o no_o better_a i_o can_v forget_v a_o memorable_a example_n that_o fall_v out_o among_o the_o campane_n in_o the_o city_n of_o capua_n during_o the_o second_o punic_a war_n through_o a_o mutiny_n among_o the_o people_n against_o their_o magistrate_n as_o livy_n report_v 3._o livy_n decad_a 3._o lib._n 3._o when_o as_o the_o commons_o abuse_v their_o liberty_n will_v needs_o depose_v the_o senate_n to_o which_o they_o be_v malicious_o affect_v and_o weary_a to_o be_v under_o their_o government_n any_o long_o and_o agreeed_o to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n pacwius_n calavius_n the_o head_n magistrate_n willing_a to_o save_v they_o when_o they_o have_v pass_v sentence_n upon_o one_o senator_n to_o have_v he_o execute_v bad_a in_o his_o stead_n to_o choose_v a_o good_a senator_n and_o a_o righteous_a at_o the_o first_o all_o be_v silent_a and_o as_o still_o as_o midnight_n for_o default_n of_o find_v a_o better_a afterward_o when_o some_o odd_a groom_n past_o all_o shame_n and_o reverence_n seem_v to_o nominate_v one_o to_o succeed_v by_o and_o by_o they_o grow_v to_o loud_a word_n and_o great_a clamour_n while_o some_o say_v flat_o they_o know_v not_o the_o man_n other_o lay_v to_o his_o charge_n sundry_a lewd_a and_o naughty_a vice_n and_o other_o object_v against_o he_o baseness_n and_o beggary_n or_o else_o some_o dishonest_a kind_n of_o trade_n and_o occupation_n whereby_o he_o gate_n his_o live_n thus_o fare_v they_o and_o much_o worse_a a_o great_a deal_n when_o a_o second_o or_o three_o senator_n be_v name_v to_o be_v substitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o other_o so_o as_o it_o be_v well_o see_v that_o the_o man_n bethink_v themselves_o better_a and_o repent_v of_o that_o they_o have_v do_v already_o consider_v how_o much_o they_o fail_v and_o be_v to_o seek_v when_o they_o shall_v appoint_v another_o in_o his_o place_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o at_o length_n they_o be_v content_a to_o keep_v their_o old_a senator_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o without_o cause_n 4._o decad._n 3._o lib_n 4._o that_o the_o same_o historiographer_n describe_v the_o beast_n of_o many_o head_n say_v well_o haec_fw-la natura_fw-la multitud●nis_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la seruit_fw-la humiliter_fw-la aut_fw-la superbè_fw-la dominatur_fw-la libertatem_fw-la quae_fw-la media_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la spernere_fw-la modicè_fw-la nec_fw-la habere_fw-la sciunt_fw-la that_o be_v see_v the_o nature_n and_o disposition_n of_o the_o multitude_n either_o they_o serve_v base_o or_o rule_v proud_o liberty_n that_o be_v the_o mean_a between_o they_o both_o they_o have_v neither_o the_o skill_n to_o despise_v with_o reason_n nor_o the_o grace_n to_o entertain_v in_o measure_n but_o to_o pass_v over_o these_o thing_n and_o to_o see_v how_o israel_n pass_v forward_o towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n i_o can_v omit_v that_o moses_n omit_v nothing_o before_o his_o death_n that_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o shorten_v their_o journey_n what_o he_o may_v and_o therefore_o send_v messenger_n unto_o the_o prince_n of_o idumea_n 17._o numb_a 20_o 17._o pray_v he_o that_o he_o may_v pass_v with_o the_o host_n of_o israel_n through_o his_o territory_n into_o the_o land_n promise_v to_o their_o father_n which_o border_v it_o for_o this_o be_v the_o near_a way_n of_o all_o other_o from_o the_o city_n of_o kadesh_n where_o moses_n then_o encamp_v whereas_o otherwise_o take_v his_o journey_n by_o the_o river_n of_o zare_v arnon_n and_o jordan_n which_o afterward_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o do_v he_o may_v have_v run_v into_o many_o hazard_n in_o the_o passage_n of_o those_o river_n with_o his_o great_a army_n and_o albeit_o moses_n use_v many_o strong_a and_o forcible_a reason_n to_o persuade_v the_o prince_n of_o idumea_n remember_v he_o that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o race_n and_o family_n with_o israel_n call_v he_o by_o the_o amiable_a name_n of_o a_o brother_n they_o be_v as_o son_n of_o one_o father_n to_o wit_n isaac_n infer_v thereby_o that_o he_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o favour_n and_o respect_v they_o than_o he_o have_v to_o affect_v the_o canaanite_n &_o make_v a_o short_a repetition_n of_o god_n blessing_n bestow_v upon_o they_o as_o also_o of_o his_o purpose_n and_o promise_n concern_v they_o in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v &_o assure_v he_o that_o he_o will_v no_o way_n offend_v he_o or_o his_o people_n neither_o yet_o wrong_a any_o by_o military_a insolency_n but_o will_v restrain_v his_o army_n within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o common_a and_o king_n highway_n pay_v money_n for_o whatsoever_o they_o use_v yea_o even_o for_o the_o water_n which_o themselves_o or_o their_o cattle_n shall_v drink_v 28_o deut._n 2_o 27_o 28_o yet_o the_o king_n not_o trust_v fair_a word_n &_o know_v the_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o country_n rampard_v with_o high_a and_o sharp_a mountain_n and_o withal_o suspect_v as_o a_o natural_a wise_a man_n that_o so_o mighty_a a_o army_n of_o stranger_n consist_v of_o more_o than_o six_o hundred_o thousand_o be_v once_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o country_n it_o will_v rest_v in_o their_o own_o will_n to_o give_v he_o law_n and_o to_o refuse_v direction_n from_o he_o and_o so_o be_v at_o their_o own_o discretion_n and_o disposition_n whether_o to_o abide_v there_o or_o to_o depart_v
build_v it_o or_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v build_v or_o where_o it_o shall_v be_v build_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o lord_n send_v nathan_n unto_o he_o who_o say_v unto_o he_o shall_v thou_o build_v i_o a_o house_n to_o dwell_v in_o whereas_o i_o have_v not_o dwell_v in_o any_o house_n since_o the_o time_n that_o i_o bring_v up_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n 7._o 2_o sa._n 7_o 5_o 6_o 7._o even_o to_o this_o day_n but_o have_v walk_v in_o a_o tent_n and_o in_o a_o tabernacle_n in_o all_o the_o place_n wherein_o i_o have_v walk_v with_o all_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n speak_v i_o a_o word_n with_o any_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n who_o i_o command_v to_o feed_v my_o people_n israel_n say_v why_o build_v you_o not_o i_o a_o house_n of_o cedar_n so_o then_o see_v it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o he_o who_o require_v these_o thing_n at_o thy_o hand_n who_o command_v of_o thou_o any_o such_o work_n who_o ever_o speak_v unto_o thou_o to_o do_v it_o howsoever_o his_o purpose_n may_v be_v commend_v yet_o the_o fact_n be_v reproove_v and_o god_n use_v two_o reason_n to_o call_v he_o back_o from_o his_o desire_n and_o enterprise_n one_o take_v from_o his_o own_o person_n the_o other_o from_o the_o person_n of_o david_n from_o the_o person_n of_o god_n because_o hitherto_o he_o have_v live_v in_o a_o tabernacle_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n in_o respect_n of_o he_o to_o trouble_v himself_o with_o the_o build_n of_o a_o temple_n from_o the_o person_n of_o david_n because_o he_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v many_o in_o israel_n beside_o he_o many_o judge_n and_o prince_n beside_o he_o and_o before_o he_o yet_o none_o of_o they_o have_v any_o such_o charge_n lay_v upon_o they_o or_o commit_v unto_o they_o or_o require_v of_o they_o so_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v enterprise_v that_o which_o be_v command_v to_o none_o of_o they_o nor_o to_o himself_o true_a it_o be_v god_n say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o deuteronomy_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o place_n where_o he_o will_v be_v worship_v but_o what_o or_o where_o that_o place_n be_v he_o do_v not_o foreshow_v &_o therefore_o his_o far_a pleasure_n to_o be_v reveal_v be_v to_o be_v expect_v and_o a_o express_a commandment_n to_o be_v wait_v for_o for_o we_o see_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o oftentimes_o somewhat_o be_v command_v which_o come_v not_o by_o and_o by_o to_o be_v practise_v and_o execute_v as_o we_o declare_v before_o touch_v the_o choose_n of_o a_o king_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n 14._o deut._n 17_o 14._o when_o they_o come_v into_o the_o land_n which_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n have_v give_v they_o so_o christ_n send_v out_o his_o apostle_n into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o command_v they_o to_o teach_v all_o nation_n but_o at_o what_o time_n they_o shall_v go_v forth_o they_o be_v to_o expect_v a_o new_a commandment_n and_o commission_n 24.49_o matth_n 28.19_o luke_n 24.49_o so_o that_o albeit_o they_o be_v bid_v to_o go_v yet_o if_o they_o have_v go_v before_o they_o have_v know_v when_o to_o go_v they_o have_v offend_v the_o sum_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o answer_n come_v hereunto_o that_o david_n thought_n and_o purpose_n be_v good_a and_o godly_a if_o we_o consider_v the_o root_n of_o it_o inasmuch_o as_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o desire_n of_o promote_a true_a religion_n nevertheless_o although_o god_n approve_v his_o intent_n yet_o he_o suffer_v he_o not_o to_o go_v forward_o because_o he_o want_v his_o word_n to_o warrant_v his_o intent_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o obey_v god_n but_o follow_v his_o own_o mind_n and_o device_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o cause_n why_o god_n forbid_v david_n to_o build_v he_o a_o temple_n and_o yet_o afterward_o the_o people_n in_o the_o day_n of_o haggai_n be_v reprove_v 4._o hag._n 1_o 4._o be_v return_v from_o captivity_n because_o they_o build_v not_o here_o he_o forbid_v that_o which_o there_o he_o command_v these_o thing_n seem_v not_o to_o agree_v together_o but_o to_o be_v contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o though_o different_a in_o show_n they_o agree_v very_o well_o in_o deed_n &_o in_o truth_n for_o in_o this_o place_n david_n be_v pull_v back_o from_o his_o purpose_n as_o run_v too_o fast_o travel_v as_o it_o be_v without_o his_o guide_n and_o sail_v without_o his_o compass_n because_o he_o have_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereas_o they_o be_v reprove_v because_o albeit_o they_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o call_v continual_o to_o that_o duty_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o can_v find_v no_o leisure_n to_o fall_v to_o work_v but_o follow_v whole_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n thus_o we_o have_v answer_v the_o objection_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o use_n &_o see_v what_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v from_o hence_o use_v 1_o first_o of_o all_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o touch_v thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o not_o to_o be_v do_v we_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v by_o the_o false_a rule_n of_o our_o own_o carnal_a and_o corrupt_a reason_n but_o according_a to_o the_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n it_o seem_v a_o small_a thing_n in_o our_o own_o judgement_n to_o burn_v incense_n with_o strange_a fire_n but_o it_o be_v a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n and_o deserve_v a_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o god_n thereby_o transgress_v or_o respect_v his_o commandment_n thereby_o violate_v for_o these_o two_o son_n of_o aaron_n die_v not_o the_o common_a death_n of_o all_o man_n nor_o be_v visit_v after_o the_o ordinary_a visitation_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o god_n wrought_v a_o strange_a work_n he_o bring_v fire_n from_o heaven_n and_o consume_v they_o 18._o numb_a 16_o 18._o the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o corah_n and_o his_o company_n they_o content_v not_o themselves_o with_o the_o ordinary_a call_n of_o the_o levite_n to_o do_v the_o service_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o stand_v before_o the_o congregation_n to_o minister_v unto_o they_o but_o they_o will_v also_o take_v every_o man_n his_o censure_n and_o put_v incense_n in_o they_o but_o they_o seek_v the_o priesthood_n also_o and_o usurp_v the_o office_n peculiar_o appoint_v to_o aaron_n and_o to_o his_o son_n it_o may_v seem_v a_o small_a thing_n to_o set_v up_o other_o to_o burn_v incense_n and_o a_o man_n may_v say_v why_o may_v not_o korah_n do_v it_o as_o well_o as_o aaron_n what_o skill_v it_o by_o who_o it_o be_v do_v but_o hereby_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v break_v and_o little_o regard_v yea_o god_n himself_o be_v contemn_v and_o little_o esteem_v in_o our_o eye_n this_o then_o bind_v every_o soul_n to_o humility_n not_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n better_o wise_a or_o more_o expedient_a and_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n then_o that_o which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o it_o neither_o yet_o to_o account_v any_o thing_n idle_a or_o superfluous_a or_o unnecessary_a or_o that_o may_v be_v amend_v there_o be_v many_o profane_a man_n that_o think_v most_o base_o and_o contemptible_o of_o the_o most_o excellent_a thing_n of_o god_n as_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v to_o many_o a_o slight_a thing_n not_o to_o be_v wash_v with_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o god_n who_o have_v institute_v that_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o woe_n unto_o they_o that_o neglect_v it_o or_o despise_v it_o the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n it_o be_v account_v among_o many_o a_o small_a matter_n whether_o they_o come_v to_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o not_o but_o we_o must_v measure_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o not_o by_o the_o outward_a show_n of_o the_o outward_a action_n but_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n because_o whatsoever_o christ_n have_v institute_v for_o the_o perpetual_a use_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v command_v to_o yield_v obedience_n unto_o it_o whosoever_o neglect_v to_o do_v what_o he_o appoint_v sin_v most_o greevous_o against_o he_o wherefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 1●_n 1_o cor._n 1●_n as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o do_v show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v such_o then_o as_o come_v seldom_o to_o this_o sacrament_n declare_v plain_o that_o they_o regard_v not_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n they_o look_v to_o receive_v life_n and_o salvation_n from_o he_o but_o they_o do_v not_o esteem_v the_o mean_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v make_v
have_v the_o breastplate_n and_o a_o ephod_n of_o gold_n eucherio_n sigon_n de_fw-fr rep_n hebr._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 3._o &_o eucherio_n which_o be_v to_o be_v note_v because_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v sometime_o wear_v a_o linned_a ephod_n they_o may_v have_v no_o blemish_n or_o deformity_n levit._n 21_o 18._o they_o may_v drink_v no_o wine_n nor_o strong_a drink_n when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n levit._n 10_o 9_o they_o may_v not_o defile_v themselves_o by_o the_o dead_a nor_o come_v nigh_o any_o that_o be_v dead_a except_o it_o be_v their_o father_n or_o mother_n son_n or_o daughter_n or_o sister_n unmarried_a levit._n 21_o 1._o they_o may_v not_o shave_v their_o head_n nor_o beard_n nor_o cut_v their_o flesh_n they_o may_v marry_v no_o harlot_n nor_o woman_n divorce_v levit._n 21_o 5_o 7._o the_o first_o that_o be_v consecrate_v to_o this_o office_n be_v aaron_n son_n nadab_n and_o abihu_n eleazar_n and_o ithamar_n from_o eleazar_n in_o david_n time_n who_o establish_v a_o exact_a order_n among_o they_o be_v issue_v 16_o family_n 4_o 1_o chron._n 24_o 4_o and_o from_o ithamar_n eight_o that_o be_v from_o they_o both_o 24_o family_n these_o he_o sort_v and_o separate_v into_o four_o and_o twenty_o class_n or_o course_n &_o name_v each_o of_o they_o after_o the_o name_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o each_o family_n and_o concern_v the_o order_n of_o they_o and_o set_v one_o before_o another_o to_o avoid_v contention_n they_o cast_v lot_n all_o of_o they_o can_v not_o attend_v every_o day_n without_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n &_o they_o must_v have_v intermission_n and_o time_n of_o vacation_n so_o that_o one_o course_n perform_v the_o service_n one_o week_n and_o another_o course_n another_o week_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o chronicle_n 8_o 2_o chron._n 23_o 8_o that_o jehoiada_n the_o priest_n dismiss_v not_o the_o course_n that_o be_v he_o send_v not_o away_o the_o troop_n and_o company_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o attend_v the_o service_n of_o the_o temple_n when_o their_o time_n of_o wait_v be_v expire_v so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o order_n appoint_v they_o shall_v have_v depart_v and_o the_o next_o course_n have_v succeed_v because_o he_o mean_v to_o make_v good_a use_n of_o they_o in_o the_o depose_n of_o wicked_a &_o usurp_v athalia_fw-la and_o in_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o royal_a throne_n of_o joash_n the_o lawful_a king_n of_o judah_n this_o also_o appear_v in_o part_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n luk._n 1_o 8_o 9_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o zachariah_n of_o the_o course_n of_o abia_n execute_v the_o priest_n office_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o priest_n etc._n etc._n thus_o much_o touch_v the_o priest_n office_n who_o be_v aaron_n and_o his_o son_n who_o god_n choose_v out_o of_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n to_o minister_v before_o he_o it_o remain_v to_o consider_v levite_n of_o the_o levite_n how_o the_o rest_n or_o residue_n of_o that_o tribe_n be_v employ_v they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v idle_a but_o to_o serve_v also_o first_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n which_o moses_n erect_v and_o afterward_o in_o the_o temple_n which_o solomon_n build_v when_o these_o grow_v up_o and_o increase_v in_o great_a number_n they_o be_v sort_v by_o david_n for_o order_n sake_n into_o four_o rank_n 7._o sigon_n de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d heb._n lib._n 5._o ●_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o some_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o temple_n some_o to_o be_v singer_n some_o to_o be_v porter_n and_o other_o scribe_n and_o judge_n touch_v the_o first_o special_o call_v levites_n that_o attend_v the_o service_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n their_o office_n be_v to_o carry_v the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n in_o the_o remove_v of_o the_o people_n until_o god_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n fix_v and_o settle_v they_o in_o one_o certain_a place_n whither_o the_o tribe_n shall_v resort_v and_o then_o they_o be_v to_o take_v care_n of_o they_o and_o the_o vessel_n appoint_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god._n unto_o these_o office_n in_o latter_a time_n be_v add_v the_o flay_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v as_o 2_o chron._n 35_o 10_o 11._o touch_v the_o second_o rank_n to_o wit_n the_o sweet_a singer_n of_o the_o song_n of_o zion_n we_o read_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o chronicle_n chap._n 25._o ●●_o 1_o chron._n ●●_o they_o be_v to_o sing_v prophecy_n with_o harp_n with_o viol_n and_o with_o cymbal_n touch_v the_o porter_n which_o be_v the_o three_o rank_n they_o be_v appoint_v to_o see_v that_o no_o uncircumcised_a no_o pollute_a or_o profane_a person_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n 1_o chron._n 26_o and_o to_o guard_v the_o same_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o all_o thing_n therein_o may_v be_v in_o safety_n as_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n the_o treasure_n of_o the_o house_n and_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o dedicate_a thing_n touch_v the_o scribe_n which_o be_v the_o last_o rank_n they_o be_v such_o as_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o expound_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o the_o synagogue_n that_o be_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o land_n who_o be_v also_o call_v doctor_n that_o be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n all_o which_o we_o may_v read_v at_o large_a in_o a_o learned_a treatise_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 5_o &_o 6._o 6._o d_o field_n of_o t●_n church_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 6._o have_v thus_o brief_o consider_v the_o distinct_a office_n of_o such_o as_o be_v set_v apart_o to_o the_o ministry_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o make_v his_o covenant_n with_o levi_n of_o life_n and_o peace_n 5._o mal._n 2_o 4_o 5._o let_v we_o now_o return_v to_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o preface_n which_o be_v the_o presentation_n of_o the_o levite_n before_o aaron_n to_o be_v as_o his_o hand_n and_o helper_n that_o they_o may_v minister_v unto_o he_o wherein_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v two_o point_n first_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o moses_n and_o second_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o commandment_n for_o touch_v the_o execution_n of_o it_o by_o moses_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o other_o place_n most_o usual_o add_v be_v in_o this_o place_n omit_v but_o must_v be_v supply_v and_o understand_v from_o that_o which_o follow_v for_o when_o once_o the_o levite_n be_v offer_v and_o present_v then_o present_o he_o proceed_v to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o so_o that_o his_o obedience_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v sufficient_o justify_v touch_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n direct_v unto_o he_o we_o be_v to_o mark_v these_o several_a point_n and_o of_o they_o the_o author_n be_v god_n for_o in_o divine_a matter_n nothing_o must_v be_v attempt_v without_o commandment_n from_o he_o he_o must_v warrant_v they_o or_o else_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v first_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o commandment_n verse_n 6_o 7_o 8._o the_o levite_n be_v give_v to_o aaron_n the_o priest_n that_o they_o may_v minister_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o they_o may_v do_v the_o service_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o that_o they_o may_v keep_v the_o instrument_n or_o vessel_n thereof_o second_o the_o order_n that_o aaron_n and_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v superior_a unto_o they_o and_o be_v as_o overseer_n of_o they_o provide_v that_o no_o stranger_n shall_v thrust_v himself_o into_o this_o call_n contrary_a to_o the_o ordinance_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n heb._n 5_o verse_n 4._o no_o man_n take_v this_o honour_n unto_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aaron_n so_o that_o he_o exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n all_o other_o that_o be_v not_o levite_n 13._o ●_o 7_o 13._o of_o the_o other_o tribe_n no_o man_n give_v attendance_n at_o the_o altar_n they_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o priesthood_n and_o the_o priesthood_n from_o they_o not_o as_o though_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o shall_v be_v one_o only_a family_n separate_v to_o which_o the_o administration_n of_o holy_a thing_n shall_v belong_v for_o after_o christ_n be_v ascend_v 3._o ●bac_fw-la in_o ●●b_n cap._n 3._o and_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a the_o distinction_n of_o tribe_n and_o family_n be_v take_v away_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o function_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o minister_n may_v be_v ordain_v and_o call_v out_o of_o any_o estate_n &_o degree_n whatsoever_o be_v furnish_v with_o sufficient_a gift_n for_o that_o purpose_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o commandment_n
justify_v or_o warrant_v that_o call_n and_o the_o great_a rabbin_n that_o be_v clothe_v in_o scarlet_n and_o have_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o it_o do_v show_v themselves_o more_o then_o ridiculous_a in_o their_o apology_n wherein_o they_o do_v nothing_o but_o vent_v their_o own_o vanity_n and_o publish_v their_o own_o shame_n to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o man_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o swarm_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n and_o those_o pestilent_a order_n that_o trouble_v heaven_n and_o earth_n church_n and_o commonwealth_n true_a religion_n and_o external_a peace_n and_o policy_n in_o body_n politic_a be_v these_o officer_n or_o office_n ordain_v of_o god_n be_v they_o any_o plant_n of_o his_o set_n in_o the_o church_n have_v they_o receive_v any_o authority_n from_o his_o mouth_n or_o be_v there_o any_o syllable_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o avouch_v these_o order_n or_o be_v they_o not_o rather_o the_o pope_n dear_a son_n and_o of_o his_o creation_n jesus_n christ_n never_o know_v they_o they_o grow_v up_o while_o his_o servant_n sleep_v that_o shall_v have_v look_v better_o to_o their_o false_a finger_n 13.25_o matth._n 13.25_o he_o never_o institute_v this_o kind_n of_o life_n he_o never_o command_v or_o counsel_v man_n to_o go_v into_o the_o wilderness_n or_o to_o coop_v up_o themselves_o in_o a_o monastery_n or_o to_o vow_v single_a life_n or_o to_o renounce_v their_o temporal_a possession_n or_o to_o betake_v themselves_o to_o voluntary_a poverty_n thereby_o to_o follow_v a_o new_a rule_n of_o life_n and_o to_o prefer_v the_o commandment_n of_o man_n before_o his_o gospel_n and_o to_o place_v the_o state_n of_o perfection_n stand_v the_o perfection_n of_o votary_n wherein_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o certain_a vain_a tradition_n which_o they_o have_v undertake_v the_o vow_n that_o they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o observe_v be_v these_o three_o the_o vow_n of_o poverty_n the_o vow_n of_o obedience_n and_o the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n first_o touch_v poverty_n or_o rather_o beggary_n as_o it_o please_v they_o to_o boast_v off_o which_o indeed_o they_o profess_v more_o than_o practise_v like_v to_o such_o as_o solomon_n paint_v out_o prou._n 13.7_o there_o be_v that_o make_v himself_o poor_a have_v great_a riches_n christ_n never_o ordain_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o life_n neither_o teach_v any_o to_o enter_v into_o it_o for_o himself_o have_v bag_n and_o money_n to_o buy_v thing_n necessary_a as_o appear_v joh._n 12.6_o and_o 13.29_o nay_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o more_o bless_a thing_n to_o give_v then_o to_o receive_v act_v 20.35_o the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o apostle_n they_o never_o vow_v such_o a_o life_n themselves_o nor_o approve_v of_o it_o in_o other_o for_o albeit_o they_o forsake_v all_o that_o they_o may_v follow_v christ_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n yet_o they_o reserve_v and_o retain_v the_o propriety_n of_o they_o it_o be_v the_o use_n of_o they_o and_o the_o pursue_v after_o they_o that_o they_o give_v over_o when_o christ_n on_o the_o cross_n say_v unto_o john_n behold_v thy_o mother_n from_o that_o hour_n he_o take_v she_o home_o to_o his_o house_n joh._n 19_o but_o how_o can_v he_o take_v she_o to_o his_o own_o if_o he_o have_v nothing_o his_o own_o and_o when_o peter_n after_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n say_v i_o go_v to_o fish_n joh._n 21._o it_o be_v not_o likely_a he_o hire_v a_o ship_n and_o use_v another_o man_n net_n but_o rather_o have_v they_o of_o his_o own_o which_o he_o have_v leave_v and_o forsake_v for_o a_o season_n again_o neither_o do_v christ_n ever_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n or_o the_o apostle_n to_o any_o other_o vow_v you_o poverty_n but_o rather_o give_v you_o alm_n luke_n 11.41_o remember_v the_o poor_a gal._n 2.10_o distribute_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o saint_n rom._n 12.13_o he_o that_o sow_v spare_o shall_v reap_v spare_o for_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n 2_o cor._n 9.6_o 7._o to_o do_v good_a and_o to_o communicate_v forget_v not_o for_o with_o such_o sacrifice_n god_n be_v well_o please_v heb._n 13.16_o these_o thing_n they_o can_v not_o perform_v but_o of_o their_o own_o substance_n except_o they_o shall_v give_v the_o mammon_n of_o iniquity_n take_v away_o wrongful_o from_o other_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n so_o often_o exhort_v to_o work_n of_o mercy_n to_o fruit_n of_o love_n and_o liberality_n towards_o the_o poor_a that_o we_o shall_v lend_v unto_o they_o look_v for_o nothing_o again_o luke_n 6._o ephes_n 4._o 2_o cor._n 8._o promise_v that_o if_o we_o give_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o us._n they_o therefore_o that_o vow_n poverty_n cast_v away_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n and_o such_o help_n as_o may_v serve_v they_o to_o show_v their_o love_n and_o liberality_n unto_o their_o brethren_n last_o beggary_n be_v threaten_v as_o a_o punishment_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v undertake_v as_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n david_n complain_v of_o his_o slanderous_a and_o malicious_a enemy_n do_v under_o the_o person_n of_o judas_n devote_v they_o or_o proscribe_v they_o let_v his_o child_n be_v fatherless_a and_o his_o wife_n a_o widow_n let_v his_o child_n be_v continual_o vagabond_n and_o beg_v let_v they_o seek_v their_o bread_n also_o out_o of_o their_o desolate_a place_n psal_n 109.9.10_o if_o then_o it_o be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n to_o be_v a_o beggar_n it_o be_v also_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n to_o have_v his_o posterity_n cut_v off_o to_o have_v the_o extortioner_n catch_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o have_v none_o to_o extend_v mercy_n unto_o he_o to_o have_v his_o name_n blot_v out_o in_o the_o generation_n follow_v and_o his_o memory_n raze_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n all_o which_o and_o many_o other_o like_a the_o prophet_n join_v with_o beg_v of_o bread_n in_o that_o psalm_n which_o be_v heap_v upon_o one_o man_n will_v keep_v he_o from_o perfection_n and_o if_o with_o beg_v of_o bread_n be_v always_o annex_v this_o that_o none_o shall_v show_v favour_n unto_o they_o nor_o extend_v any_o mercy_n to_o their_o fatherless_a child_n it_o be_v like_o it_o will_v bring_v out_o of_o use_n this_o beggarly_a occupation_n in_o a_o short_a time_n the_o same_o prophet_n note_v it_o as_o a_o special_a blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o government_n i_o never_o see_v the_o righteous_a forsake_v nor_o his_o seed_n beg_v bread_n psal_n 37.25_o it_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o beggar_n in_o israel_n deut._n 15._o the_o wise_a man_n pray_v against_o that_o estate_n prou._n 30.8_o that_o he_o may_v have_v neither_o superfluous_a riches_n nor_o extreme_a poverty_n now_o then_o either_o the_o state_n of_o perfection_n be_v not_o so_o glorious_a a_o thing_n as_o they_o boast_v off_o or_o else_o the_o wise_a man_n pray_v against_o this_o perfection_n which_o these_o hypocrite_n do_v embrace_v and_o voluntary_o choose_v unto_o themselves_o obedience_n touch_v the_o vow_n of_o obedience_n second_o touch_v obedience_n to_o be_v perform_v to_o the_o superior_n of_o their_o order_n they_o profess_v to_o follow_v his_o rule_n and_o injunction_n as_o the_o franciscan_n must_v follow_v the_o rule_n of_o saint_n francis_n and_o so_o the_o rest_n bound_v themselves_o to_o observe_v the_o precept_n of_o their_o governor_n which_o sometime_o be_v sottish_a &_o senseless_a and_o sometime_o impious_a and_o blasphemous_a whereby_o they_o leave_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o execute_v tradition_n the_o apostle_n say_v you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n be_v not_o servant_n of_o man_n 1_o cor._n 7.23_o but_o such_o as_o vow_v monkish_a obedience_n in_o thing_n not_o prescribe_v in_o the_o word_n make_v themselves_o servant_n and_o slave_n of_o man_n again_o he_o reprove_v they_o that_o say_v 1._o 1_o cor_n 1._o i_o be_o paul_n i_o be_o apollo_n i_o be_o cephas_n because_o they_o addict_v themselves_o as_o bond_n servant_n to_o man_n they_o then_o be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v condemn_v that_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o dominicke_n of_o francis_n of_o ignatius_n and_o the_o rest_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o never_o make_v any_o such_o vow_n nor_o teach_v it_o to_o other_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o have_v any_o disciple_n consecrate_v unto_o they_o to_o bear_v their_o name_n christ_n our_o saviour_n show_v that_o no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o master_n because_o one_o only_o be_v our_o master_n for_o when_o they_o command_v contrary_a thing_n we_o can_v cleave_v unto_o they_o both_o but_o such_o thing_n may_v superstitious_a superior_n and_o governor_n command_v nay_o have_v command_v beside_o it_o be_v folly_n to_o lay_v a_o burden_n of_o humane_a precept_n upon_o other_o man_n shoulder_n when_o as_o we_o can_v perfect_o observe_v and_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n of_o
riches_n and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o more_o than_o they_o that_o find_v great_a spoil_n account_v the_o merchandise_n of_o it_o better_o than_o the_o merchandise_n of_o silver_n and_o the_o gain_n thereof_o more_o precious_a than_o ruby_n so_o that_o nothing_o that_o we_o high_o esteem_v can_v be_v compare_v unto_o it_o prou._n 3.13_o 14._o magnify_v it_o as_o a_o treasure_n of_o that_o value_n that_o rather_o than_o thou_o will_v leave_v it_o thou_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v all_o that_o thou_o have_v matth._n 13._o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o more_o slake_v and_o shake_v off_o our_o devout_a attention_n then_o to_o account_v the_o precious_a word_n of_o god_n vile_a and_o base_a in_o our_o eye_n according_a to_o the_o corrupt_a custom_n of_o many_o in_o our_o day_n that_o prefer_v husk_n fit_a to_o feed_v swine_n before_o the_o fat_a of_o wheat_n that_o be_v send_v to_o nourish_v the_o son_n of_o god_n four_o we_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v great_a hope_n of_o those_o that_o refuse_v not_o the_o mean_n but_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o it_o but_o none_o at_o all_o of_o those_o that_o utter_o refuse_v it_o what_o god_n may_v work_v extraordinary_o who_o sometime_o feed_v by_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n as_o he_o do_v the_o israelite_n 17.6_o exod._n 16.15_o 1_o king_n 17.6_o and_o eliah_n in_o the_o wilderness_n we_o can_v affirm_v and_o they_o that_o wait_v upon_o such_o vanity_n forsake_v their_o own_o mercy_n but_o of_o this_o point_n we_o have_v speak_v already_o last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o lay_v up_o the_o word_n in_o our_o heart_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v take_v from_o we_o but_o that_o we_o may_v practice_v it_o and_o profit_n by_o it_o for_o all_o our_o hear_n must_v aim_v at_o profit_v we_o must_v desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n 2.2_o 1_o pet._n 2.2_o that_o we_o may_v grow_v thereby_o now_o it_o can_v never_o take_v root_n except_o we_o hear_v it_o with_o a_o honest_a and_o good_a heart_n 8.15_o luke_n 8.15_o if_o we_o have_v it_o only_o run_v in_o our_o mouth_n or_o swim_v in_o our_o brain_n it_o be_v as_o the_o grass_n upon_o the_o house_n top_n 129.6.7_o psal_n 129.6.7_o which_o wither_v afore_o it_o grow_v up_o wherewith_o the_o mower_n fill_v not_o his_o hand_n nor_o he_o that_o bind_v sheaf_n his_o bosom_n let_v we_o therefore_o first_o of_o all_o give_v our_o heart_n unto_o god_n pray_v he_o to_o reform_v they_o and_o to_o open_v they_o that_o so_o we_o may_v attend_v to_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v deliver_v unto_o us._n as_o for_o those_o that_o have_v their_o mouth_n open_a but_o their_o heart_n empty_a of_o the_o word_n they_o be_v as_o sound_a brass_n or_o a_o tinkle_a cymbal_n they_o may_v please_v themselves_o and_o deceive_v other_o for_o a_o time_n but_o their_o hypocrisy_n shall_v be_v uncase_v their_o deceitful_a deal_n manifest_v and_o themselves_o prove_v to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o vessel_n that_o make_v a_o noise_n but_o be_v without_o all_o substance_n in_o they_o verse_n 11_o 12._o and_o i_o behold_v i_o have_v take_v the_o levite_n etc._n etc._n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n direct_v unto_o moses_n that_o he_o shall_v present_v the_o levite_n before_o aaron_n the_o priest_n that_o they_o may_v minister_v unto_o he_o now_o we_o be_v to_o proceed_v to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o commandment_n where_o we_o see_v the_o cause_n render_v why_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o because_o even_o unto_o this_o time_n the_o first_o bear_v have_v execute_v the_o priest_n office_n be_v consecrate_v unto_o god_n and_o preserve_v out_o of_o the_o common_a destruction_n when_o the_o first_o bear_v in_o egypt_n be_v destroy_v he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o god_n mercy_n towards_o they_o who_o may_v just_o have_v destroy_v they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o egyptian_n if_o it_o have_v please_v he_o when_o we_o see_v a_o common_a desolation_n or_o destruction_n and_o ourselves_o as_o a_o remnant_n take_v out_o of_o the_o common_a calamity_n it_o ought_v to_o make_v we_o thankful_a unto_o god_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o hold_v our_o life_n of_o he_o in_o chief_a thus_o do_v noah_n stand_v affect_v when_o he_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n after_o he_o be_v come_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n and_o be_v preserve_v with_o his_o family_n from_o the_o flood_n of_o water_n thus_o do_v daniel_n ●●_o dan._n 5.20_o ●●_o teach_v belshazzar_n the_o king_n to_o humble_v his_o heart_n know_v the_o heavy_a judgement_n that_o god_n bring_v upon_o his_o father_n and_o take_v his_o glory_n from_o he_o we_o must_v profit_v by_o the_o example_n of_o god_n work_n both_o of_o his_o mercy_n and_o judgement_n upon_o other_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o doctrine_n that_o the_o first_o bear_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n the_o lord_n lord_n the_o first_o bo●_n be_v sanctify_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o consecrate_v to_o serve_v he_o and_o to_o instruct_v other_o this_o dignity_n and_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v begin_v among_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n and_o continue_v in_o his_o posterity_n as_o well_o before_o as_o after_o the_o general_a destruction_n of_o the_o old_a world_n the_o elder_a ever_o succeed_v in_o the_o kingly_a and_o priestly_a office_n unless_o for_o some_o open_a impiety_n or_o other_o secret_a cause_n best_o know_v unto_o god_n and_o unknown_a unto_o the_o church_n he_o be_v reject_v so_o that_o there_o be_v evermore_o some_o excellency_n until_o that_o israel_n come_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o the_o church_n become_v national_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n say_v to_o cain_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o adam_n if_o thou_o do_v well_o shall_v thou_o not_o be_v accept_v and_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o well_o sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o unto_o thou_o shall_v be_v his_o desire_n and_o thou_o shall_v rule_v over_o he_o gen._n 4.7_o to_o this_o purpose_n jacob_n speak_v to_o reuben_n 49.3_o gen._n 49.3_o thou_o be_v my_o first_o bear_v my_o might_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o my_o strength_n the_o excellency_n of_o dignity_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o power_n thus_o he_o be_v by_o privilege_n of_o birthright_n and_o thus_o be_v every_o son_n by_o creation_n that_o first_o open_v the_o matrice_n 2.23_o luke_n 2.23_o whereby_o we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o family_n of_o the_o faithful_a from_o the_o first_o man_n that_o god_n create_v until_o aaron_n be_v sanctify_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n unto_o god_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v the_o elder_a of_o the_o family_n ordinary_o have_v both_o the_o kingly_a and_o priestly_a direction_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o brethren_n as_o we_o see_v this_o before_o in_o the_o house_n of_o adam_n so_o it_o appear_v also_o afterward_o for_o when_o cain_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o adam_n to_o who_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v do_v pertain_v be_v for_o his_o iniquity_n reject_v from_o that_o honour_n and_o excommunicate_v from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o spiritual_a kind_n of_o banishment_n god_n raise_v up_o seth_n who_o be_v teach_v by_o his_o father_n touch_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n touch_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o promise_a saviour_n assist_v he_o while_o he_o live_v in_o guide_v his_o family_n and_o succeed_v he_o after_o his_o death_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v as_o a_o little_a flock_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o race_n of_o cain_n posterity_n that_o marry_v many_o wife_n and_o increase_v in_o great_a multitude_n in_o like_a sort_n enoch_n succeed_v seth_n and_o die_v ●_o ●ield_v of_o the_o ●rch_n lib._n 5._o ●_o ●et_v 2.5_o ●●_o 4._o ●_o leave_v that_o honour_n to_o kenan_n kenan_n to_o mahalaleel_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v preacher_n of_o righteousness_n and_o repentance_n &_o some_o of_o they_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n to_o convince_v that_o wicked_a generation_n these_o preacher_n of_o god_n be_v contemn_v and_o despise_v in_o the_o world_n such_o entertainment_n have_v his_o servant_n ever_o find_v the_o flood_n come_v and_o sweep_v they_o away_o noah_n govern_v as_o a_o father_n the_o church_n of_o god_n before_o and_o after_o the_o flood_n and_o leave_v the_o same_o dignity_n and_o office_n to_o shem_n his_o second_o son_n japhet_n his_o elder_a son_n be_v put_v behind_o for_o secret_a cause_n know_v unto_o god_n even_o as_o his_o father_n have_v commit_v it_o unto_o he_o 10.21_o ●en_n 10.21_o thus_o we_o may_v proceed_v and_o go_v forward_o to_o show_v in_o succeed_a age_n of_o the_o church_n how_o god_n continue_v this_o favour_n to_o the_o first_o bear_v and_o thereby_o set_v as_o it_o be_v a_o crown_n of_o honour_n upon_o their_o head_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o
they_o and_o live_v with_o they_o and_o yet_o never_o be_v infect_v whereas_o few_o dare_v adventure_v their_o body_n in_o such_o case_n but_o put_v the_o case_n it_o be_v lawful_a yet_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v lawful_a be_v not_o expedient_a all_o thing_n that_o be_v lawful_a edify_v not_o 23._o 1_o cor._n 6_o 12_o 1_o 10_o 23._o we_o must_v take_v heed_n we_o do_v not_o give_v offence_n to_o other_o neither_o destroy_v he_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v so_o then_o the_o best_a way_n for_o we_o to_o avoid_v evil_a be_v to_o take_v knowledge_n of_o our_o own_o weakness_n and_o to_o strive_v against_o our_o own_o infirmity_n and_o to_o fly_v as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v from_o danger_n four_o let_v we_o not_o flatter_v ourselves_o with_o a_o idle_a conceit_n and_o foolish_a opinion_n that_o we_o by_o keep_v they_o company_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o draw_v they_o and_o persuade_v they_o to_o goodness_n for_o we_o see_v this_o by_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o humane_a affair_n that_o when_o the_o good_a and_o evil_n meet_v together_o and_o be_v join_v in_o friendship_n the_o godly_a be_v rather_o corrupt_v by_o the_o ungodly_a than_o the_o ungodly_a correct_v by_o the_o godly_a this_o may_v appear_v unto_o we_o in_o solomon_n a_o man_n great_o belove_v of_o god_n and_o great_o bless_v with_o wisdom_n 25_o ●he_n 13_o 25_o nevertheless_o even_o he_o do_v outlandish_a woman_n cause_n to_o sin_n this_o be_v signify_v also_o in_o the_o law_n holy_a flesh_n carry_v in_o the_o skirt_n of_o a_o garment_n do_v not_o make_v it_o holy_a but_o the_o pollute_a person_n 14._o ●g_z 2_o 13_o 14._o touch_v any_o thing_n do_v pollute_v it_o and_o make_v it_o unclean_a with_o his_o filthiness_n it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o cleanse_v and_o purify_v then_o to_o defile_v and_o make_v unclean_a and_o therefore_o they_o will_v soon_o tempt_v we_o than_o we_o shall_v teach_v they_o ●●iect_n ●●iect_n what_o then_o be_v vice_n of_o more_o force_n than_o virtue_n and_o shall_v evil_o prevail_v more_o than_o good_a i_o answer_v answer_n answer_n we_o consider_v not_o good_a and_o evil_a as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o but_o as_o they_o be_v in_o we_o not_o as_o they_o be_v be_v separate_v from_o we_o but_o join_v to_o us._n the_o evil_a man_n be_v whole_o evil_a whereas_o we_o be_v but_o in_o part_n good_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v strong_a we_o be_v weak_a they_o be_v whole_o flesh_n we_o be_v not_o altogether_o spirit_n but_o only_o in_o part_n regenerate_v so_o that_o they_o hale_v we_o and_o hold_v we_o with_o all_o their_o power_n with_o all_o their_o might_n and_o with_o all_o their_o strength_n that_o we_o must_v use_v violence_n to_o get_v from_o they_o or_o else_o we_o be_v undo_v they_o be_v as_o man_n that_o set_v all_o their_o strength_n to_o the_o work_n and_o labour_n night_n and_o day_n with_o both_o their_o hand_n we_o have_v our_o strength_n divide_v and_o work_v as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o hand_n and_o set_v too_o but_o one_o shoulder_n they_o run_v in_o the_o way_n of_o evil_a we_o do_v as_o it_o be_v halt_v with_o one_o foot_n like_o jacob_n when_o he_o wrestle_v with_o god_n 25._o ●n_n 32_o 25._o whereby_o he_o have_v the_o hollow_a of_o his_o thigh_n put_v out_o of_o joint_n they_o fare_v as_o man_n that_o descend_v down_o a_o mountain_n with_o great_a violence_n and_o have_v no_o stay_n of_o themselves_o until_o they_o come_v to_o the_o bottom_n we_o creep_v up_o towards_o the_o top_n with_o all_o four_o like_a jonathan_n 6._o ●am_fw-la 14_o 6._o that_o go_v over_o to_o the_o garrison_n of_o the_o uncircumcised_a we_o be_v fain_o to_o climb_v up_o rock_n and_o cliff_n and_o craggy_a place_n upon_o our_o hand_n and_o upon_o our_o foot_n with_o much_o labour_n and_o great_a sweat_v and_o oftentimes_o faint_a by_o the_o way_n that_o which_o they_o do_v they_o do_v with_o ease_n &_o pleasure_n but_o we_o find_v many_o enemy_n to_o buckle_v withal_o and_o be_v constrain_v not_o only_o to_o fight_v with_o beast_n at_o ephesus_n but_o to_o wrestle_v hand_n to_o hand_n 12._o 〈◊〉_d 6_o 12._o against_o principality_n against_o power_n against_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n and_o against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n so_o that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o need_v to_o take_v to_o we_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a both_o to_o stand_v and_o to_o withstand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n five_o thou_o must_v esteem_v of_o evil_a company_n as_o of_o he_o that_o have_v a_o run_a sore_n of_o a_o infectious_a disease_n and_o hate_v all_o vice_n in_o thy_o dear_a companion_n more_o than_o the_o plague_n they_o that_o have_v sound_a eye_n be_v fearful_a of_o themselves_o &_o careful_a to_o refrain_v from_o look_v upon_o their_o eye_n that_o be_v sore_a and_o blear_a ovid._n ovid._n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v hurt_v can_v a_o man_n have_v his_o conversation_n among_o thief_n and_o not_o at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o be_v rob_v of_o his_o treasure_n such_o as_o have_v nothing_o be_v sure_a to_o lose_v nothing_o but_o they_o that_o have_v treasure_n about_o they_o by_o converse_v with_o deceitful_a couzener_n and_o cheat_a companion_n be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o so_o if_o we_o live_v among_o these_o spiritual_a thief_n that_o be_v more_o common_a and_o subtle_a and_o therefore_o more_o dangerous_a than_o the_o other_o we_o can_v but_o he_o spoil_v and_o strip_v naked_a of_o the_o precious_a pearl_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o enrich_v our_o soul_n and_o be_v more_o of_o value_n then_o all_o the_o gold_n and_o silver_n that_o be_v dig_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n the_o sixth_o and_o last_o branch_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o be_v in_o love_n with_o good_a company_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v better_v and_o edify_v evil_a person_n that_o infect_v as_o a_o filthy_a dunghill_n that_o cast_v up_o a_o unsavoury_a send_v be_v compare_v to_o pitch_v that_o defile_v to_o leaven_n that_o sour_v to_o the_o canker_n that_o consume_v and_o to_o the_o scab_a sheep_n that_o infect_v a_o whole_a flock_n but_o good_a and_o godly_a company_n be_v as_o the_o sweet_a ointment_n or_o perfume_n of_o the_o apothecary_n a_o man_n can_v come_v among_o they_o but_o all_o his_o garment_n smell_v of_o myrrh_n aloe_n and_o cassia_n they_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n in_o their_o measure_n and_o delight_v great_o the_o nostril_n of_o such_o as_o live_v with_o they_o if_o we_o converse_v among_o they_o we_o shall_v somewhat_o savour_v of_o they_o so_o then_o by_o the_o work_n that_o we_o practise_v it_o may_v be_v know_v what_o company_n we_o frequent_a the_o wise_a man_n say_v prou._n 13_o 20._o he_o that_o walk_v with_o wise_a man_n shall_v be_v wise_a but_o a_o companion_n of_o fool_n shall_v be_v destroy_v great_a be_v the_o force_n of_o company_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o good_a or_o to_o evil_n with_o the_o good_a we_o shall_v learn_v goodness_n &_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o it_o to_o our_o soul_n among_o the_o ungodly_a we_o shall_v learn_v nothing_o but_o wickedness_n and_o in_o the_o end_n receive_v nothing_o but_o a_o crop_n of_o care_n and_o shame_n and_o dishonour_n and_o rebuke_v and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n death_n and_o destruction_n for_o ever_o 14._o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o sinai_n say_v 15._o number_v the_o child_n of_o levi_n after_o the_o house_n of_o their_o father_n by_o their_o family_n every_o male_n from_o a_o month_n old_a and_o upward_a shall_v thou_o number_v they_o 16._o and_o moses_n number_v they_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o be_v command_v we_o have_v speak_v hitherto_o of_o both_o the_o part_n of_o the_o preface_n that_o go_v before_o the_o enumeration_n of_o the_o levite_n consist_v partly_o in_o the_o description_n of_o aaron_n son_n and_o partly_o in_o the_o presentation_n of_o that_o tribe_n before_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n to_o serve_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n now_o we_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o number_n of_o they_o which_o be_v do_v apart_o in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n for_o god_n will_v not_o have_v the_o levite_n number_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v free_v they_o from_o the_o war_n and_o except_v they_o as_o a_o choose_a portion_n to_o himself_o from_o civil_a affair_n and_o that_o they_o may_v more_o diligent_o more_o serious_o &_o more_o careful_o without_o all_o disturbance_n and_o distraction_n apply_v and_o employ_v themselves_o in_o that_o holy_a function_n whereunto_o they_o be_v appoint_v so_o then_o after_o that_o the_o
shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n 39_o all_o that_o be_v number_v of_o the_o levite_n which_o moses_n &_o aaron_n number_v at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n throughout_o all_o their_o family_n all_o the_o male_n from_o a_o month_n old_a and_o upward_a be_v twenty_o and_o two_o thousand_o we_o have_v already_o handle_v the_o number_n of_o two_o of_o the_o family_n that_o have_v their_o foundation_n in_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n to_o wit_n the_o gershonite_n and_o the_o kohathite_n now_o follow_v the_o three_o and_o last_o that_o be_v the_o merarite_n touch_v who_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v sundry_a particular_a point_n as_o we_o have_v do_v in_o the_o two_o former_a division_n for_o first_o the_o family_n descend_v of_o merari_n be_v name_v which_o be_v two_o the_o mahlite_n and_o the_o mushites_n verse_n 33._o second_o the_o number_n of_o person_n the_o sum_n of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o all_o the_o male_n from_o a_o month_n old_a and_o above_o be_v six_o thousand_o &_o two_o hundred_o verse_n 34._o three_o the_o overseer_n or_o superintendent_n of_o they_o all_o be_v zuriel_n the_o son_n of_o abihail_n four_o the_o place_n of_o their_o abode_n in_o the_o host_n be_v on_o the_o north-side_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n verse_n 35._o last_o the_o office_n and_o function_n commit_v unto_o they_o was_z the_o woodworke_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o instrument_n these_o thing_n be_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n and_o custody_n hitherto_o we_o have_v handle_v the_o number_n of_o this_o tribe_n simple_o consider_v in_o itself_o according_a to_o the_o particular_a family_n of_o it_o now_o let_v we_o observe_v how_o it_o be_v conclude_v in_o this_o conclusion_n set_v down_o in_o the_o two_o last_o verse_n of_o this_o division_n we_o be_v to_o mark_v two_o point_n first_o the_o person_n that_o go_v before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n on_o the_o east-side_n second_o the_o total_a sum_n of_o the_o whole_a tribe_n be_v reckon_v up_o the_o person_n that_o be_v to_o pitch_v on_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n towards_o the_o east_n be_v these_o both_o moses_n himself_o as_o the_o chief_a captain_n &_o commander_n over_o the_o whole_a and_o also_o aaron_n with_o his_o son_n the_o priest_n minister_a unto_o god_n and_o his_o church_n whereunto_o be_v annex_v a_o certain_a proviso_n that_o none_o shall_v dare_v to_o thrust_v himself_o into_o their_o office_n verse_n 38._o second_o the_o total_a sum_n of_o all_o the_o former_a particular_n be_v bring_v together_o and_o the_o account_n cast_v up_o which_o be_v say_v to_o amount_v to_o two_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o v._o 39_o out_o of_o which_o general_a number_n must_v be_v deduct_v the_o priest_n and_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o the_o levite_n themselves_o for_o otherwise_o the_o whole_a tribe_n of_o levi_n consist_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o such_o as_o be_v call_v by_o the_o common_a name_n of_o levite_n amount_v to_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o and_o two_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o soul_n verse_n 33._o of_o merari_n be_v the_o family_n etc._n etc._n in_o this_o division_n we_o see_v more_o plain_o and_o particular_o that_o which_o be_v in_o part_n note_v before_o namely_o the_o several_a mansion_n and_o situation_n that_o these_o levite_n have_v about_o the_o tabernacle_n which_o be_v the_o place_n of_o god_n public_a service_n they_o compass_v it_o round_o about_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v far_o from_o any_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o always_o resident_a among_o they_o the_o gershonite_n pitch_v behind_o the_o tabernacle_n westward_o verse_n 23._o the_o kohathite_n pitch_v on_o the_o southside_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n verse_n 29._o the_o merarite_n pitch_v on_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n verse_n 35._o now_o lest_o any_o part_n shall_v be_v leave_v unfurnished_a and_o unprovided_a moses_n and_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n be_v command_v to_o take_v up_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o to_o pitch_v on_o the_o east-side_n god_n may_v have_v put_v and_o place_v all_o the_o levite_n in_o one_o corner_n of_o the_o host_n if_o it_o have_v please_v he_o but_o in_o great_a mercy_n both_o towards_o the_o levite_n and_o people_n they_o be_v seat_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o army_n and_o charge_v to_o compass_v the_o tabernacle_n round_o about_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v serve_v the_o better_a for_o give_v direction_n and_o instruction_n indifferent_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n that_o be_v to_o use_v their_o ministry_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o neither_o the_o teacher_n be_v constrain_v to_o go_v far_o to_o their_o hearer_n nor_o the_o hearer_n to_o take_v any_o tedious_a journey_n to_o their_o teacher_n this_o teach_v we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v every_o part_n of_o his_o people_n teach_v such_o be_v the_o goodness_n doctrine_n 1_o of_o almighty_a god_n small_a god_n will_v have_v all_o place_n and_o people_n teach_v even_o the_o small_a that_o he_o will_v have_v none_o of_o his_o servant_n untaught_a how_o small_a soever_o the_o place_n be_v how_o mean_a soever_o the_o person_n be_v none_o be_v too_o high_a in_o regard_n of_o their_o great_a place_n none_o be_v too_o low_a in_o regard_n of_o their_o obscure_a calling_n none_o be_v too_o good_a to_o be_v teach_v whatsoever_o their_o degree_n be_v we_o see_v this_o most_o evident_o in_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n itself_o to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n be_v they_o divide_v in_o jacob_n and_o scatter_v in_o israel_n gen._n 49_o 7_o gen._n 49_o 7_o but_o that_o all_o the_o lord_n people_n may_v be_v instruct_v from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a and_o have_v their_o portion_n in_o due_a season_n allot_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n this_o be_v give_v as_o a_o commendation_n of_o the_o levite_n and_o of_o jehoshaphat_n that_o send_v they_o 2_o chron_n 17_o 9_o they_o teach_v in_o judah_n and_o have_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o they_o and_o go_v about_o throughout_o all_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o set_v down_o the_o notable_a fruit_n and_o end_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n eph._n 4_o 13._o he_o give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n touch_v the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n in_o christ_n our_o saviour_n in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n 8_o 1._o it_o come_v to_o pass_v afterward_o that_o he_o go_v throughout_o every_o city_n and_o village_n preach_v and_o show_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o chap._n 13_o 22._o he_o go_v through_o the_o city_n &_o village_n teach_v and_o journey_v towards_o jerusalem_n the_o like_a we_o read_v of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o walk_v in_o the_o step_n of_o their_o master_n go_v through_o the_o town_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o heal_v every_o where_n luke_n 9_o 6._o so_o also_o it_o be_v with_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n the_o lord_n send_v they_o two_o and_o two_o before_o his_o face_n into_o every_o city_n and_o place_n whither_o he_o himself_o will_v come_v luk._n 10_o 1._o see_v then_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n christ_n &_o his_o disciple_n go_v about_o through_o all_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n publish_v the_o gospel_n in_o every_o city_n and_o village_n preach_v every_o where_o and_o go_v into_o all_o place_n we_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o all_o place_n great_a and_o small_a all_o person_n high_a and_o low_a all_o congregation_n big_a and_o little_a shall_v have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n establish_v and_o settle_v among_o they_o reason_n 1_o this_o will_v be_v make_v plain_a and_o clear_a unto_o we_o by_o diverse_a reason_n first_o consider_v with_o i_o the_o title_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v worthy_o call_v the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o lord_n &_o master_n of_o his_o house-is_a not_o he_o the_o shepherd_n of_o israel_n that_o lead_v joseph_n like_o sheep_n psal_n 80_o 1._o will_v a_o shepherd_n that_o have_v any_o care_n of_o his_o sheep_n or_o any_o love_n unto_o they_o look_v unto_o some_o of_o they_o and_o not_o to_o all_o or_o will_v he_o not_o rather_o if_o any_o be_v go_v astray_o 6._o lu._n 15_o 4_o 5_o 6._o leave_v ninety_o and_o nine_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o seek_v that_o lose_a one_o until_o he_o find_v it_o so_o be_v it_o the_o will_n of_o our_o father_n that_o be_v
the_o staff_n of_o it_o 15._o and_o when_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o cover_v the_o sanctuary_n and_o all_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n as_o the_o camp_n be_v to_o set_v forward_o after_o that_o the_o son_n of_o kohath_n shall_v come_v to_o bear_v it_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o touch_v any_o holy_a thing_n lest_o they_o die_v these_o thing_n be_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o son_n of_o kohath_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n 16._o and_o to_o the_o office_n of_o eleazar_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n the_o priest_n pertain_v the_o oil_n for_o the_o light_n 24._o exod._n 30_o 34._o exod._n 30_o 24._o and_o the_o sweet_a incense_n and_o the_o daily_a meat_n offer_v and_o the_o anoint_v oil_n and_o the_o oversight_n of_o all_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o of_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o in_o the_o vessel_n thereof_o in_o this_o division_n the_o particular_a charge_n beolng_v to_o the_o son_n of_o kohath_n be_v both_o propound_v and_o confirm_v touch_v the_o special_a part_n here_o remember_v first_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n as_o overseer_n of_o the_o rest_n be_v charge_v when_o the_o host_n of_o god_n remoove_v to_o cover_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n the_o table_n of_o show_n bread_n the_o candlestick_n of_o light_n the_o vessel_n of_o oil_n and_o such_o like_a second_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o kohathite_n be_v set_v down_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o cover_v the_o sanctuary_n and_o all_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n they_o must_v come_v to_o bear_v both_o it_o and_o they_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o provide_v that_o they_o do_v not_o touch_v any_o of_o they_o or_o meddle_v with_o they_o until_o they_o be_v cover_v lest_o they_o be_v destroy_v three_o the_o office_n of_o eleazar_n the_o priest_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n be_v specify_v to_o he_o belong_v the_o oil_n for_o the_o light_n the_o sweet_a incense_n the_o daily_a meat_n offer_v and_o the_o anoint_v oil_n with_o all_o the_o oversight_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n these_o several_a point_n thus_o large_o lay_v open_a may_v seem_v needless_a and_o unprofitable_a to_o be_v thus_o particular_o rehearse_v but_o as_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o type_n and_o figure_n unto_o they_o so_o they_o have_v their_o use_n to_o they_o and_o serve_v also_o for_o our_o instruction_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n touch_v the_o instrument_n belong_v to_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o vessel_n that_o be_v use_v as_o the_o oil_n the_o lamp_n the_o candlestick_n the_o show_n bread_n the_o incense_n and_o what_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o they_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la and_o leviticus_fw-la now_o we_o will_v only_o call_v to_o remembrance_n these_o three_o point_n and_o brief_o note_v what_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v from_o thence_o first_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v remoove_v from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o the_o part_n of_o it_o take_v asunder_o and_o join_v together_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o show_v that_o the_o faithful_a so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o body_n 1.13_o ●_o pet._n 1.13_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o shall_v continue_v until_o they_o obtain_v a_o stable_a inheritance_n in_o the_o heaven_n we_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o rest_n 12.9_o deut._n 12.9_o and_o to_o the_o inheritance_n which_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v give_v us._n we_o have_v here_o no_o continue_a city_n to_o dwell_v in_o we_o be_v as_o pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n in_o this_o world_n we_o seek_v a_o country_n elsewhere_o let_v we_o therefore_o use_v this_o world_n as_o though_o we_o use_v it_o not_o 1._o cor._n 7.31_o be_v not_o deceive_v with_o the_o glorious_a and_o glitter_a show_n of_o earthly_a thing_n if_o we_o do_v consider_v the_o frailty_n and_o uncertainty_n of_o all_o humane_a thing_n here_o beneath_o that_o they_o be_v the_o subtle_a and_o sugar_a bait_n of_o satan_n which_o catch_v and_o condemn_v many_o thousand_o in_o the_o world_n 6.6_o tim._n 6.6_o and_o bring_v man_n to_o many_o foolish_a and_o noisome_a lust_n that_o drown_v they_o in_o perdition_n and_o destruction_n we_o will_v not_o so_o easy_o wound_v our_o conscience_n and_o sell_v our_o soul_n for_o gain_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o many_o be_v who_o in_o all_o thing_n wherein_o they_o have_v deal_n and_o do_n with_o other_o regard_v nothing_o but_o their_o own_o wealth_n albeit_o it_o be_v join_v with_o decay_n and_o undo_n of_o our_o brethren_n second_o observe_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o sanctuary_n together_o with_o all_o the_o frame_n and_o furniture_n thereof_o be_v cover_v with_o badger_n skin_n a_o very_a sure_a cover_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n &_o every_o particular_a member_n thereof_o be_v under_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v under_o a_o cover_n hereunto_o the_o prophet_n allude_v psal_n 27.5_o in_o the_o time_n of_o trouble_n he_o shall_v hide_v i_o he_o shall_v set_v i_o up_o upon_o a_o rock_n and_o the_o prophet_n esay_n chap._n 4._o 5_o 6._o the_o lord_n will_v create_v upon_o every_o dwell_a place_n of_o mount_n zion_n and_o upon_o her_o assembly_n a_o cloud_n and_o smoke_n by_o day_n and_o the_o shine_a of_o a_o flame_a fire_n by_o night_n for_o upon_o all_o the_o glory_n shall_v be_v a_o defence_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o tabernacle_n for_o a_o shadow_n in_o the_o day_n time_n from_o the_o heat_n and_o for_o a_o place_n of_o refuge_n and_o for_o a_o covert_n from_o storm_n and_o from_o rain_n this_o minister_v great_a comfort_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n to_o consider_v that_o howsoever_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o violence_n of_o wind_n and_o weather_n yet_o it_o can_v sustain_v no_o harm_n because_o it_o be_v most_o sure_o and_o safe_o cover_v against_o all_o injury_n tempest_n and_o storm_n whatsoever_o none_o lie_v open_a to_o such_o trouble_n and_o turmoil_n as_o the_o church_n none_o be_v so_o guard_v &_o regard_v as_o they_o be_v it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o we_o shall_v hold_v out_o and_o continue_v in_o our_o profession_n against_o such_o danger_n except_o we_o have_v a_o cover_n upon_o we_o as_o the_o helmet_n of_o salvation_n he_o be_v our_o defence_n and_o a_o buckler_n round_o about_o us._n he_o will_v never_o leave_v we_o nor_o forsake_v we_o so_o that_o we_o may_v bold_o say_v the_o lord_n be_v my_o deliverer_n i_o will_v not_o fear_v what_o man_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o last_o we_o see_v the_o tabernacle_n have_v diverse_a and_o sundry_a instrument_n in_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o sanctify_a and_o set_v apart_o to_o holy_a use_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o word_n the_o sacrament_n the_o preach_v the_o pray_v the_o praise_v of_o god_n the_o gift_n of_o sundry_a sort_n bestow_v upon_o the_o church_n be_v all_o of_o they_o sacred_a and_o holy_a by_o the_o special_a institution_n of_o god_n hereunto_o do_v the_o prophet_n zachary_n allude_v chap._n 14._o 20_o 21._o in_o that_o day_n shall_v there_o be_v upon_o the_o bell_n of_o the_o horse_n holiness_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o pot_n in_o the_o lord_n house_n shall_v be_v like_o the_o bolle_n before_o the_o altar_n yea_o every_o pot_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o judah_n shall_v be_v holiness_n unto_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o all_o they_o that_o sacrifice_n shall_v come_v and_o take_v of_o they_o and_o see_v therein_o for_o in_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o the_o canaanite_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o thing_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n and_o the_o further_a of_o his_o worship_n be_v all_o of_o they_o holy_a and_o there_o be_v as_o it_o be_v grave_v upon_o they_o 28.36_o exod._n 28.36_o as_o once_o on_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n holiness_n to_o the_o lord_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n be_v call_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v holy_a also_o this_o teach_v how_o we_o shall_v be_v affect_v when_o we_o present_v ourselves_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o come_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n here_o be_v holy_a thing_n for_o such_o as_o be_v holy_a if_o we_o come_v unto_o they_o with_o sanctify_a heart_n and_o touch_v they_o with_o sanctify_a hand_n such_o as_o come_v profane_o unto_o they_o receive_v no_o benefit_n by_o they_o he_o that_o turn_v away_o his_o ear_n from_o hear_v the_o law_n even_o his_o prayer_n be_v
of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n shall_v keep_v thy_o charge_n and_o the_o charge_n of_o all_o the_o tabernacle_n only_o they_o shall_v not_o come_v nigh_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o the_o altar_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o you_o also_o die_v where_o we_o see_v god_n do_v threaten_v aaron_n and_o his_o son_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n verse_n 18.19_o cut_v you_o not_o off_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o family_n etc._n etc._n we_o have_v in_o these_o word_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a institution_n it_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o danger_n that_o will_v ensue_v the_o careless_a and_o unreverent_a handle_n of_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n aaron_z and_o his_o son_n must_v appoint_v to_o the_o kohathite_n their_o several_a office_n and_o show_v they_o what_o part_n every_o particular_a person_n must_v bear_v to_o the_o end_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n do_v not_o break_v in_o among_o they_o and_o cut_v off_o every_o soul_n that_o sin_v the_o consideration_n therefore_o of_o the_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n of_o god_n ready_a to_o come_v upon_o the_o offender_n aught_o to_o increase_v their_o care_n to_o do_v the_o duty_n that_o god_n require_v we_o learn_v from_o hence_o doctrine_n 1_o that_o all_o holy_a thing_n must_v be_v handle_v right_o religious_o holy_a thing_n must_v be_v handle_v reverent_o and_o religious_o reverent_o and_o religious_o whatsoever_o matter_n of_o god_n we_o meddle_v withal_o whether_o it_o be_v hear_v of_o his_o word_n or_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n or_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o confer_v with_o other_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o knowledge_n &_o obedience_n we_o be_v to_o be_v careful_a to_o do_v they_o with_o all_o possible_a fear_n and_o reverence_n this_o duty_n the_o lord_n urge_v by_o his_o prophet_n esay_n 66.2_o to_o he_o will_v i_o look_v even_o to_o he_o that_o be_v poor_a and_o of_o a_o contrite_a spirit_n and_o tremble_v at_o my_o word_n the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o hebrew_n persuade_v to_o labour_v to_o have_v grace_n whereby_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n acceptable_o with_o reverence_n and_o godly_a fear_n hebr._n 12.28_o they_o that_o will_v please_v god_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o worship_n must_v be_v humble_o affect_v and_o base_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n will_v we_o to_o be_v careful_a not_o only_o what_o we_o hear_v mar._n 4.24_o but_o also_o how_o we_o hear_v luke_n 8.18_o we_o must_v regard_v not_o only_o the_o matter_n that_o be_v deliver_v but_o the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v receive_v forasmuch_o as_o we_o may_v hear_v the_o word_n and_o yet_o sin_n in_o our_o hear_n thus_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n affect_v when_o they_o come_v before_o he_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o o_o my_o god_n i_o be_o ashamed_a and_o blush_v to_o lif_n up_o my_o face_n to_o thou_o my_o god_n for_o our_o iniquity_n be_v increase_v over_o our_o head_n and_o our_o trespass_n be_v grow_v up_o unto_o the_o heaven_n ezra_n 9.6_o wherefore_o whensoever_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o god_n in_o any_o part_n of_o his_o word_n or_o worship_n let_v we_o come_v in_o humility_n and_o lowliness_n let_v we_o approach_v near_o unto_o he_o with_o a_o break_a heart_n with_o a_o contrite_a spirit_n &_o with_o a_o humble_a soul_n fall_v down_o flat_a before_o his_o footstool_n and_o worship_v towards_o his_o holy_a temple_n reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v evident_a for_o first_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o god_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n when_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v or_o read_v the_o lord_n speak_v to_o we_o when_o we_o pray_v to_o god_n we_o speak_v to_o he_o that_o be_v glorious_a in_o power_n and_o praise_n abraham_n pray_v unto_o god_n confess_v his_o own_o baseness_n and_o unworthiness_n i_o have_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o speak_v unto_o the_o lord_n which_o be_o but_o dust_n and_o ash_n gen._n 18.27_o and_o daniel_n in_o his_o prayer_n say_v o_o lord_n righteousness_n belong_v unto_o thou_o but_o unto_o we_o confusion_n of_o face_n as_o at_o this_o day_n dan._n 9.7_o child_n deal_v before_o their_o parent_n will_v be_v wary_a how_o they_o behave_v themselves_o subject_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o prince_n will_v be_v most_o dutiful_a so_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v and_o much_o rather_o when_o we_o appear_v before_o the_o king_n of_o king_n consider_v with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v so_o likewise_o touch_v the_o word_n it_o be_v not_o man_n that_o do_v deliver_v it_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v oftentimes_o command_v to_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v unto_o the_o church_n revel_v 2._o and_o 3._o reason_n 2_o second_o such_o as_o come_v without_o reverence_n and_o due_a regard_n into_o his_o presence_n do_v lose_v the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n of_o their_o come_n we_o be_v will_v to_o give_v earnest_a heed_n to_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o shall_v let_v they_o slip_v heb._n 2.1_o this_o be_v it_o that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n teach_v lu._n 8._o for_o have_v give_v warning_n that_o we_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o hear_v he_o give_v this_o reason_n mar._n 4.24_o with_o what_o measure_n you_o meet_v it_o shall_v be_v measure_v to_o you_o and_o unto_o you_o that_o hear_v shall_v more_o be_v give_v where_o we_o see_v god_n will_v deal_v with_o we_o as_o we_o deal_v with_o he_o and_o serve_v we_o as_o we_o serve_v he_o such_o measure_n of_o attention_n as_o we_o bring_v with_o we_o mar._n ●eoph_n enarr_n cap._n 4._o mar._n such_o measure_n of_o grace_n shall_v we_o receive_v from_o he_o if_o then_o we_o come_v careless_a it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o depart_v fruitless_a lay_v then_o these_o two_o thing_n together_o that_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o a_o most_o terrible_a and_o fearful_a god_n who_o be_v even_o a_o consume_a fire_n and_o that_o with_o what_o measure_n of_o reverence_n and_o attention_n we_o meet_v it_o shall_v be_v measure_v unto_o we_o again_o it_o follow_v from_o they_o both_o that_o god_n must_v be_v serve_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a use_v 1_o let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o remain_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o us._n first_o this_o reprove_v all_o such_o as_o come_v without_o reverence_n to_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n never_o consider_v whereabout_o they_o go_v but_o rash_o and_o unreverent_o disorderous_o &_o undecent_o behave_v themselves_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v come_v to_o hear_v a_o speech_n utter_v by_o his_o prince_n so_o contemptible_o all_o man_n will_v cry_v shame_n of_o he_o and_o account_v he_o worthy_a severe_a punishment_n and_o censure_v he_o as_o guilty_a of_o the_o contempt_n of_o his_o person_n i_o shall_v think_v i_o have_v do_v a_o great_a work_n and_o lay_v a_o worthy_a foundation_n if_o i_o can_v thorough_o teach_v you_o this_o one_o lesson_n and_o ground_n you_o in_o this_o one_o point_n to_o behave_v yourselves_o with_o reverence_n in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n worship_n he_o that_o have_v learned_a to_o come_v reverent_o and_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o in_o his_o presence_n have_v make_v a_o notable_a beginning_n &_o a_o good_a entrance_n to_o work_v in_o he_o right_o hear_v and_o careful_a practise_v scarce_o one_o among_o a_o hundred_o make_v conscience_n of_o this_o duty_n and_o our_o ordinary_a assembly_n have_v scarce_o the_o outward_a face_n of_o a_o church_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o want_n of_o this_o duty_n in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o hearer_n if_o the_o lest_o occasion_n be_v offer_v our_o eye_n and_o foot_n and_o tongue_n and_o hand_n be_v set_v on_o work_v another_o way_n that_o we_o have_v quite_o forget_v god_n his_o word_n the_o work_n in_o hand_n the_o matter_n the_o time_n the_o place_n and_o ourselves_o also_o as_o if_o we_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o fool_n what_o be_v now_o become_v of_o our_o hear_n or_o where_o be_v the_o attention_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o we_o if_o any_o man_n come_v into_o the_o church_n our_o eye_n be_v fix_v upon_o he_o our_o foot_n be_v ready_a to_o carry_v we_o unto_o he_o our_o mouth_n be_v open_v to_o speak_v unto_o he_o our_o hand_n be_v stretch_v out_o to_o draw_v he_o as_o it_o be_v with_o violence_n unto_o we_o and_o sometime_o while_o one_o hail_v he_o one_o way_n another_o pull_v he_o another_o way_n that_o we_o seem_v to_o strive_v who_o shall_v most_o forget_v himself_o and_o be_v author_n of_o the_o great_a disorder_n and_o confusion_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n
barbarous_a enemy_n use_v a_o barbarous_a tongue_n which_o shall_v bring_v we_o into_o slavery_n and_o subjection_n for_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n if_o we_o refuse_v to_o hear_v he_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n 21._o ●●scal_n obs●ru_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d or_o 14_o 21._o to_o compel_v we_o even_o against_o our_o will_n to_o hear_v another_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o misery_n and_o to_o the_o danger_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o he_o deal_v with_o his_o own_o people_n for_o their_o unthankfulnes_n who_o he_o upbraid_v that_o they_o understand_v not_o his_o speech_n 43._o ●●hn_n 8_o 43._o and_o therefore_o arm_v the_o merciless_a roman_n against_o they_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o a_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o and_o scourge_v they_o by_o that_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n the_o which_o chastisement_n continue_v upon_o they_o to_o this_o day_n use_v 5_o last_o these_o silver_n trumpet_n serve_v to_o sound_v the_o alarm_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o people_n put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o last_o day_n when_o all_o people_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o and_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n of_o god_n for_o god_n will_v also_o have_v his_o trumpet_n these_o be_v blow_v by_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n the_o last_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v blow_v by_o the_o archangel_n of_o this_o we_o read_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o which_o christ_n himself_o speak_v ●1_n ●●th_n 24_o ●1_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n the_o evangelist_n show_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o a_o great_a sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n and_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o elect_a from_o the_o four_o wind_n even_o from_o one_o end_n of_o heaven_n to_o another_o and_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n say_v behold_v i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o at_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v in_o a_o moment_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n at_o the_o last_o trumpet_n for_o the_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v and_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v raise_v up_o incorruptible_a and_o we_o shall_v be_v change_v 1_o corinth_n 15_o 51_o 52._o likewise_o the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o 1_o thess_n 4_o verse_n 16._o in_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n many_o fearful_a sign_n and_o token_n of_o god_n glorious_a presence_n appear_v that_o make_v the_o people_n fly_v away_o &_o cry_v out_o among_o the_o rest_n they_o hear_v the_o noise_n of_o the_o trumpet_n exod._n 20_o 18._o which_o sound_v long_o and_o wax_v loud_a &_o loud_o chap._n 19_o 1●_n this_o be_v so_o terrible_a that_o moses_n say_v 21_o heb._n 12_o 19_o 21_o i_o exceed_o fear_v and_o quake_v but_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o god_n will_v requi●e_v a_o account_n of_o the_o law_n and_o how_o we_o have_v walk_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o when_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o his_o work_n the_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v much_o loud_o and_o the_o sound_n of_o it_o far_o shrill_a for_o the_o dead_a sh●ll_v hear_v it_o &_o arise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n this_o shall_v cause_v a_o great_a fear_n in_o all_o then_o be_v at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n fearful_a christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n shall_v be_v fearful_a because_o his_o come_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v sudden_a unlooked_v for_o powerful_a and_o glorious_a when_o man_n shall_v promise_v to_o themselves_o peace_n and_o safety_n then_o sudden_a destruction_n shall_v come_v upon_o they_o as_o travail_v upon_o a_o woman_n with_o child_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v 1_o thess_n 5_o 3._o and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n and_o lot_n when_o they_o give_v themselves_o to_o a_o general_a security_n and_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n till_o they_o be_v destroy_v one_o sort_n with_o water_n and_o another_o with_o fire_n so_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v mat._n 24_o 37._o it_o shall_v be_v also_o powerful_a his_o first_o come_n be_v in_o much_o weakness_n but_o this_o with_o great_a might_n able_a to_o sweep_v away_o all_o his_o enemy_n to_o hell_n last_o it_o shall_v be_v glorious_a for_o he_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o thousand_o of_o his_o angel_n that_o shall_v attend_v upon_o he_o as_o servant_n upon_o their_o master_n ready_a to_o execute_v his_o will_n jude_n 14._o and_o this_o his_o come_n shall_v have_v a_o threefold_a effect_n come_n a_o threefold_a effect_n of_o christ_n come_n for_o there_o will_v follow_v immediate_o a_o gather_v together_o a_o separation_n and_o then_o a_o judge_a first_o all_o must_v be_v gather_v together_o at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n both_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o live_n they_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n some_o to_o everlasting_a life_n &_o some_o to_o shame_n &_o everlasting_a contempt_n dan._n 12_o 2._o after_o this_o gather_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o separation_n christ_n sit_v in_o his_o throne_n of_o glory_n 31._o math._n 24_o 31._o the_o elect_a shall_v be_v set_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n the_o reprobate_a at_o his_o left_a then_o shall_v follow_v the_o judgement_n itself_o 33._o math_n 25_o 33._o the_o judge_n of_o all_o judge_n give_v a_o most_o just_a sentence_n calling_z the_o elect_v to_o inherit_v ●he_v kingdom_n prepare_v for_o they_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n 41._o math._n 25_o 32._o math._n 25_o 41._o &_o cast_v the_o reprobate_a into_o everlasting_a torment_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n &_o his_o angel_n ver._n 11_o 12._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v on_o the_o twenty_o day_n of_o the_o second_o month_n in_o the_o second_o year_n that_o the_o cloud_n be_v take_v up_o etc._n etc._n here_o we_o have_v the_o remove_n of_o the_o israelite_n from_o the_o desert_n of_o arabia_n the_o stony_a which_o border_v upon_o mount_n sinai_n where_o they_o abide_v for_o the_o space_n almost_o of_o a_o whole_a year_n during_o which_o time_n the_o law_n be_v give_v the_o tabernacle_n be_v build_v the_o priest_n be_v consecrate_v &_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n establish_v in_o this_o remove_n we_o must_v observe_v three_o thing_n the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o it_o the_o care_n of_o moses_n in_o prepare_v &_o provide_v a_o guide_n to_o lead_v they_o and_o the_o prayer_n that_o he_o usual_o and_o ordinary_o make_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o march_n and_o likewise_o when_o the_o ark_n rest_v touch_v the_o first_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n remove_v from_o their_o encamp_a at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o mountain_n sinai_n towards_o paran_n the_o army_n or_o great_a squadron_n of_o juda_n lead_v by_o naashon_n take_v the_o vanguard_n follow_v by_o nethaneel_n and_o eliab_n leadcr_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o issachar_n and_o zebulun_n after_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n march_v as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o book_n from_o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o god_n will_v have_v order_n observe_v among_o his_o people_n doctrine_n in_o all_o his_o ordinance_n god_n order_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o precept_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 40._o let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n he_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o comely_a order_n observe_v among_o the_o colossian_n ch_n 2_o 5._o we_o see_v before_o how_o the_o lord_n appoint_v the_o tabernacle_n to_o be_v place_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o the_o camp_n and_o the_o levite_n to_o attend_v round_o about_o and_o all_o these_o to_o be_v compass_v on_o every_o side_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n and_o if_o we_o will_v cast_v back_o our_o eye_n to_o the_o first_o time_n &_o mark_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o together_o with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o the_o earth_n the_o water_n the_o air_n the_o firmament_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o the_o bless_a who_o can_v express_v the_o goodly_a order_n which_o they_o possess_v &_o keep_v for_o as_o they_o be_v place_v one_o above_o the_o other_o so_o they_o be_v pure_a subtle_a simple_a and_o notable_a and_o as_o this_o exquisite_a order_n show_v and_o shine_v forth_o in_o the_o element_n and_o the_o heaven_n so_o do_v it_o in_o the_o angel_n for_o as_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n so_o do_v one_o angel_n
their_o conscience_n can_v find_v out_o somewhat_o we_o may_v just_o fear_v and_o suspect_v there_o be_v more_o behind_o that_o be_v unespied_a of_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o his_o most_o mighty_a hand_n we_o shall_v judge_v ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o lord_n 11_o 1_o cor._n 11_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o escape_v his_o judgement_n that_o know_v all_o and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o four_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a comfort_n to_o use_v 4_o those_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n because_o though_o they_o be_v oppress_v with_o false_a judgement_n &_o uncharitable_a calumniation_n of_o man_n yet_o when_o he_o judge_v he_o will_v judge_v righteous_o when_o he_o come_v to_o try_v all_o the_o child_n of_o man_n he_o will_v first_o make_v enquiry_n before_o ever_o he_o proceed_v against_o they_o therefore_o this_o be_v the_o comfort_n of_o every_o man_n he_o shall_v never_o be_v wrong_v before_o god_n howsoever_o he_o may_v be_v before_o man_n so_o that_o he_o may_v stand_v at_o defiance_n with_o all_o his_o adversary_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v forasmuch_o as_o god_n will_v proceed_v so_o just_o and_o righteous_o with_o he_o though_o they_o have_v heavy_a and_o horrible_a thing_n lay_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o malicious_a man_n yet_o god_n himself_o will_v do_v they_o right_o and_o albeit_o they_o be_v deny_v justice_n upon_o earth_n yet_o with_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v righteous_a judgement_n five_o this_o serve_v to_o inform_v those_o that_o sit_v use_v in_o any_o place_n of_o justice_n to_o do_v right_a to_o other_o either_o public_a or_o private_a in_o the_o commonwealth_n or_o in_o the_o family_n namely_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o proceed_v but_o upon_o a_o sure_a and_o know_a cause_n it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o god_n so_o to_o do_v and_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o god_n so_o also_o it_o be_v the_o precept_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v obedient_a whosoever_o will_v judge_v true_o he_o must_v labour_v so_o to_o do_v it_o that_o he_o pervert_v not_o justice_n it_o be_v the_o course_n that_o god_n have_v usual_o take_v and_o therefore_o they_o that_o will_v be_v like_a unto_o god_n must_v proceed_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n so_o as_o they_o have_v he_o for_o a_o example_n first_o we_o must_v make_v enquiry_n and_o after_o the_o cause_n be_v try_v &_o know_v to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n otherwise_o we_o can_v never_o deal_v just_o pro._n 18_o 13._o act_n 21_o 33_o &_o 22_o 24._o some_o do_v altogether_o trust_v report_n and_o accusation_n of_o servant_n and_o have_v but_o one_o ear_n to_o hear_v but_o as_o we_o have_v one_o ear_n that_o we_o lend_v to_o the_o accuser_n so_o we_o shall_v keep_v another_o always_o for_o the_o accuse_v last_o this_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o general_n use_v 6_o judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n that_o all_o must_v appear_v before_o god_n judgement_n seat_n and_o be_v judge_v of_o he_o dan._n 12_o 2._o true_a it_o be_v there_o shall_v mocker_n arise_v and_o there_o be_v such_o atheist_n already_o rise_v in_o the_o world_n that_o shall_v say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n howbeit_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n require_v it_o though_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n do_v defer_v it_o we_o see_v not_o this_o always_o do_v in_o this_o world_n 5._o 〈…〉_o ●1_n 6_o ●6_n 25._o ●15_n 19_o ●_o 10._o 〈…〉_o 5._o at_o that_o day_n shall_v every_o man_n receive_v according_a to_o the_o thing_n he_o have_v do_v in_o his_o body_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_n let_v we_o therefore_o endeavour_n evermore_o to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n 6._o and_o he_o say_v hear_v now_o my_o word_n if_o there_o be_v a_o prophet_n among_o you_o i_o the_o lord_n will_v make_v myself_o know_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n and_o will_v speak_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o dream_n 7._o my_o servant_n moses_n be_v not_o so_o who_o be_v faithful_a in_o all_o my_o house_n 8._o with_o he_o will_v i_o speak_v mouth_n to_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n after_o the_o citation_n follow_v the_o convince_a of_o those_o guilty_a person_n to_o their_o face_n for_o in_o judgement_n the_o party_n accuse_v must_v be_v present_a 16._o 〈◊〉_d 51._o 〈◊〉_d 10._o 〈◊〉_d 15._o ●_o 16._o this_o conviction_n have_v a_o preface_n command_v they_o to_o hear_v for_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o to_o hear_v when_o god_n speak_v and_o the_o substance_n itself_o contain_v god_n argue_v plead_v &_o witness_v against_o they_o and_o a_o reproof_n of_o they_o in_o the_o plead_a god_n declare_v that_o he_o communicate_v himself_o in_o special_a manner_n to_o moses_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n he_o speak_v to_o they_o by_o vision_n and_o dream_n but_o to_o he_o mouth_n to_o mouth_n apparent_o not_o dark_o 16._o but_o do_v moses_n see_v god_n essence_n &_o behold_v he_o as_o he_o be_v who_o be_v say_v to_o behold_v the_o similitude_n of_o the_o lord_n 16._o answ_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n deut._n 34_o 10._o exod._n 33_o and_o 34._o he_o see_v the_o likeness_n of_o god_n not_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n he_o see_v he_o in_o a_o certain_a resemblance_n so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v and_o comprehend_v and_o far_o than_o any_o other_o and_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n and_o degree_n than_o the_o rest_n for_o as_o god_n call_v he_o to_o a_o great_a office_n and_o function_n so_o he_o endue_v he_o with_o great_a gift_n heb._n 3_o 4_o 5._o observe_v from_o hence_o that_o in_o former_a time_n god_n use_v many_o way_n to_o discover_v and_o manifest_v his_o truth_n and_o will_n unto_o his_o people_n heb._n 1_o 1._o see_v hereby_o the_o greatness_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o hand_n he_o have_v diverse_a way_n to_o manifest_v his_o truth_n he_o use_v what_o seem_v best_a to_o himself_o job_n 33._o again_o we_o have_v occasion_n hereby_o to_o consider_v that_o god_n mercy_n be_v great_a to_o we_o they_o to_o our_o forefather_n christ_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n shine_v bright_a in_o our_o eye_n 16._o moreover_o in_o compare_v moses_n with_o the_o prophet_n and_o prefer_v he_o 9_o doctrine_n god_n reveal_v himself_o ●o_o one_o mo_z e_o then_o to_o another_o ●_o cor_fw-la 12._o ●_o 3_o luke_n 1.16.17_o mat_n 11.11_o 2._o king_n 2_o 9_o we_o see_v that_o god_n reveal_v himself_o to_o one_o more_o than_o to_o another_o and_o give_v great_a gift_n to_o some_o than_o he_o do_v to_o other_o to_o moses_n more_fw-it plenti_fw-la ully_fw-mi then_o to_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v stand_v in_o need_n one_o of_o another_o and_o thereby_o bind_v we_o more_o close_o together_o and_o to_o try_v we_o how_o we_o will_v employ_v they_o to_o the_o good_a of_o other_o as_o he_o do_v in_o earthly_a blessing_n this_o point_n be_v of_o good_a use_n unto_o we_o be_v right_o apply_v let_v use_v 1_o not_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v a_o great_a portion_n and_o measure_n of_o grace_n contemn_v such_o as_o have_v less_o for_o shall_v the_o servant_n disgrace_n or_o reproach_n such_o as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n do_v accept_v and_o approve_v nay_o do_v grace_n and_o honour_n mat_n 25.23_o and_o as_o for_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v less_o let_v not_o they_o envy_v those_o that_o god_n have_v make_v above_o they_o for_o though_o one_o member_n in_o the_o body_n have_v more_o honour_n than_o another_o yet_o be_v there_o no_o division_n in_o the_o body_n so_o the_o strong_a shall_v bear_v with_o the_o weak_a again_o let_v every_o use_v 2_o one_o be_v thankful_a for_o gift_n receive_v that_o they_o may_v be_v sanctify_v to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o other_o 1_o cor._n 14.18_o last_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o use_v 3_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o desire_v the_o best_a gift_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v do_v the_o most_o good_a it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o hide_v the_o gift_n we_o have_v receive_v as_o the_o evil_a servant_n do_v his_o talon_n and_o if_o to_o cover_v they_o under_o a_o bushel_n much_o more_o to_o turn_v they_o and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o subvert_v of_o the_o faith_n as_o many_o do_v that_o be_v not_o sanctify_v let_v we_o labour_n to_o use_v they_o and_o to_o use_v they_o well_o that_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o knowledge_n zeal_n and_o sanctification_n 1.7_o 2_o tim._n 1.7_o lest_o they_o decay_v in_o we_o &_o so_o be_v take_v away_o
pet_n 3.1_o 2._o ezek._n 12.27_o 28._o again_o it_o meet_v with_o such_o as_o abuse_v god_n patience_n to_o harden_v their_o heart_n in_o sin_n the_o more_o god_n spare_v we_o and_o the_o long_o he_o wait_v the_o more_o insolent_a and_o untoward_a the_o great_a sort_n do_v grow_v abuse_v the_o lenity_n and_o long_o suffer_v of_o god_n presume_v and_o wax_v bold_a to_o offend_v because_o he_o do_v not_o speedy_o punish_v eccle._n 8.11_o nehe._n 9.17_o sin_n be_v increase_v by_o this_o mean_n for_o the_o more_o he_o suffer_v the_o great_a be_v our_o sin_n three_o this_o serve_v for_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n use_v 3_o it_o lift_v up_o perplex_v and_o disquiet_v conscience_n for_o their_o sin_n tremble_v under_o god_n hand_n as_o the_o child_n under_o the_o rod_n and_o fear_v to_o be_v consume_v in_o his_o wrath_n let_v no_o man_n despair_n or_o be_v out_o of_o hope_n for_o this_o be_v his_o nature_n he_o be_v long_o suffer_v exod._n 34._o this_o be_v utter_v to_o moses_n to_o comfort_v he_o who_o fear_v the_o utter_a subversion_n and_o destruction_n of_o israel_n for_o their_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n exod._n 32.2_o psal_n 103.8_o 9_o again_o it_o serve_v to_o work_v confidence_n and_o assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o mercy_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a that_o if_o they_o pray_v unto_o he_o and_o desire_v to_o have_v his_o anger_n remove_v he_o will_v be_v appease_v towards_o they_o and_o spare_v they_o as_o we_o see_v in_o this_o place_n how_o moses_n use_v these_o word_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n last_o it_o comfort_v the_o church_n against_o the_o wickedness_n and_o cruelty_n of_o her_o persecuter_n they_o stick_v not_o oftentimes_o to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n and_o god_n seem_v for_o a_o time_n to_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o regard_v either_o what_o the_o enemy_n do_v or_o what_o his_o child_n suffer_v for_o he_o send_v down_o no_o punishment_n upon_o they_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v that_o god_n have_v forget_v we_o in_o our_o misery_n as_o if_o he_o have_v shut_v up_o his_o kindness_n in_o displeasure_n but_o he_o be_v patient_a even_o towards_o they_o he_o best_a know_v his_o time_n and_o season_n for_o justice_n and_o judgement_n as_o he_o do_v for_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n when_o the_o time_n of_o his_o patience_n be_v run_v out_o then_o will_v his_o time_n of_o justice_n clear_o appear_v thus_o do_v david_n comfort_v himself_o a_o man_n that_o have_v experience_n of_o many_o sorrow_n ps_n 86.14_o 15._o o_o god_n the_o proud_a be_v rise_v against_o i_o and_o the_o assembly_n of_o violent_a man_n have_v seek_v after_o my_o soul_n and_o have_v not_o set_v thou_o before_o they_o but_o thou_o o_o god_n be_v a_o god_n full_a of_o compassion_n and_o gracious_a long_o suffer_v and_o plenteous_a in_o mercy_n and_o truth_n last_o sundry_a exhortation_n arise_v from_o use_n 4_o hence_o to_o sundry_a good_a duty_n which_o i_o will_v only_o point_v out_o first_o it_o serve_v to_o move_v we_o to_o break_v out_o into_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n our_o sin_n deserve_v sudden_o to_o be_v sweep_v away_o the_o measure_n of_o they_o be_v exceed_o great_a it_o be_v his_o great_a mercy_n that_o we_o be_v not_o utter_o confound_v &_o consume_v psal_n 130.3_o 4._o second_o we_o must_v be_v patient_a towards_o our_o brethren_n col._n 3.12_o 13._o ephe_n 4.32_o let_v we_o dea●e_v with_o our_o brethren_n as_o we_o see_v god_n have_v deal_v with_o us._n if_o we_o be_v hasty_a to_o revenge_v let_v we_o take_v heed_n lest_o we_o kindle_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o ourselves_o matthew_n 6._o verse_n 15._o last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o repent_v of_o our_o sin_n while_o we_o have_v time_n and_o to_o seek_v the_o lord_n while_o he_o be_v near_o rom._n 2.4_o joel_n 2.3_o verse_n 19_o pardon_v i_o beseech_v thou_o the_o iniquity_n of_o this_o people_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o thy_o mercy_n and_o as_o thou_o have_v forgive_v this_o people_n from_o egypt_n even_o until_o now_o here_o we_o have_v the_o three_o and_o last_o argument_n of_o the_o prayer_n to_o move_v the_o lord_n to_o pardon_v they_o wherein_o he_o put_v the_o lord_n in_o mind_n of_o his_o work_n of_o mercy_n and_o thereupon_o be_v bold_a to_o pray_v for_o the_o continual_a course_n of_o more_o mercy_n pardon_v this_o people_n as_o thou_o have_v forgive_v they_o from_o egypt_n until_o now_o doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n all_o the_o benefit_n and_o blessing_n that_o we_o receive_v in_o this_o life_n come_v all_o the_o blessing_n present_v give_v assurance_n of_o more_o blessing_n to_o come_v be_v such_o as_o give_v we_o hope_v and_o assurance_n that_o we_o shall_v receive_v more_o blessing_n and_o mercy_n from_o god_n so_o then_o the_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v this_o that_o mercy_n present_v assure_v more_o mercy_n to_o come_v upon_o the_o faithful_a as_o psal_n 77.5_o josh_n 10.25_o 1_o sam._n 17.34_o 35_o 36_o 37._o 1._o reason_n 1._o the_o reason_n a_o promise_n in_o part_n perform_v be_v a_o good_a assurance_n that_o the_o rest_n also_o shall_v be_v perform_v so_o than_o if_o god_n have_v give_v to_o a_o man_n any_o blessing_n in_o part_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o assurance_n unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v also_o receive_v more_o from_o god_n every_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v as_o a_o pawn_n or_o gage_v lay_v up_o and_o leave_v with_o we_o for_o when_o he_o bestow_v any_o blessing_n he_o give_v we_o earnest_a to_o assure_v we_o of_o more_o that_o shall_v follow_v and_o of_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o the_o same_o gift_n 2_o cor._n 1.22_o and_o 5.5_o ephes_n 1.14_o second_o deed_n be_v much_o more_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a than_o word_n albeit_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sure_a whatsoever_o he_o have_v speak_v yet_o we_o lie_v better_o hold_v upon_o his_o work_n man_n be_v not_o so_o much_o afraid_a of_o god_n threaten_n to_o come_v as_o when_o they_o see_v and_o feel_v his_o judgement_n present_a upon_o themselves_o and_o other_o so_o be_v it_o in_o this_o case_n for_o though_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v good_a payment_n because_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o can_v lie_v tit._n 1.2_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o so_o easy_o draw_v to_o believe_v they_o make_v by_o word_n only_o as_o when_o we_o find_v they_o in_o part_n perform_v unto_o we_o then_o we_o conceive_v undoubted_a and_o assure_a hope_n to_o receive_v the_o rest_n also_o because_o he_o do_v thereby_o as_o it_o be_v enter_v payment_n of_o a_o debt_n i_o mean_v a_o debt_n by_o promise_n on_o his_o part_n not_o by_o any_o desert_n on_o our_o part_n use_v 1_o the_o use_n follow_v first_o this_o teach_v every_o man_n that_o be_v aught_o to_o observe_v and_o keep_v in_o mind_n the_o benefit_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n both_o upon_o himself_o and_o other_o how_o god_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v bless_v he_o that_o so_o he_o may_v have_v comfort_n in_o time_n of_o need_n for_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o so_o many_o despair_n and_o have_v no_o comfort_n at_o all_o when_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o they_o they_o forget_v god_n goodness_n and_o never_o cast_v their_o eye_n back_o to_o the_o time_n past_a nor_o remember_v the_o former_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n and_o so_o be_v whole_o destitute_a of_o comfort_n and_o remain_v without_o hope_n to_o receive_v any_o more_o mercy_n from_o he_o when_o moses_n pray_v unto_o god_n to_o show_v he_o this_o mercy_n that_o he_o may_v enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n he_o beseech_v the_o lord_n after_o this_o manner_n o_o lord_n god_n thou_o have_v begin_v to_o show_v unto_o thy_o servant_n thy_o greatness_n and_o thy_o mighty_a hand_n i_o pray_v thou_o therefore_o let_v i_o go_v over_o and_o see_v the_o good_a land_n that_o be_v beyond_o jordan_n deuter._n 3.24_o whereby_o we_o see_v he_o consider_v how_o god_n have_v deal_v with_o he_o in_o former_a time_n and_o make_v that_o a_o motive_n to_o stir_v up_o his_o faith_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v to_o hope_v for_o and_o to_o desire_v the_o continuance_n thereof_o second_o this_o teach_v all_o of_o we_o whereupon_o use_v 2_o we_o ought_v in_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n to_o stay_v ourselves_o and_o look_v for_o comfort_n sure_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o god_n former_a promise_n there_o we_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o find_v comfort_n if_o we_o think_v upon_o they_o for_o they_o be_v as_o sure_a pledge_n to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v afterward_o receive_v more_o also_o and_o let_v we_o labour_n to_o rest_v upon_o god_n because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o many_o blessing_n and_o mercy_n in_o former_a time_n so_o that_o we_o
albeit_o god_n have_v decree_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v punish_v yet_o he_o have_v not_o declare_v by_o any_o law_n the_o kind_n of_o punishment_n and_o therefore_o they_o ask_v how_o he_o shall_v be_v punish_v as_o for_o example_n whether_o he_o shall_v be_v hang_v on_o a_o tree_n or_o burn_v with_o fire_n or_o stone_v with_o stone_n or_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n but_o this_o answer_n can_v satisfy_v i_o for_o when_o death_n be_v appoint_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o particular_a kind_n not_o express_v ●_o josh_n 7_o ●_o with_o 6_o ●_o the_o magistrate_n be_v leave_v free_a to_o set_v down_o the_o same_o as_o also_o when_o no_o punishment_n at_o all_o be_v mention_v deut._n 25_o 13.14_o neither_o be_v the_o people_n bind_v to_o ask_v counsel_n at_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n upon_o every_o occasion_n of_o execution_n of_o justice_n against_o evil_a doer_n where_o the_o manner_n of_o punishment_n be_v not_o limit_v it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o witch_n shall_v not_o live_v exod._n 22_o 18._o saul_n do_v well_o and_o be_v commend_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o he_o cut_v they_o off_o that_o have_v familiar_a spirit_n out_o of_o the_o land_n &_o root_v out_o the_o wizard_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o ask_v neither_o be_v he_o bind_v to_o ask_v counsel_n now_o or_o which_o way_n they_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n though_o god_n have_v not_o define_v the_o particular_a levit._n 20_o 27._o this_o then_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o magistrate_n when_o he_o have_v the_o general_a to_o decree_v the_o particular_a punishment_n as_o he_o think_v good_a in_o sundry_a place_n of_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n we_o find_v sundry_a law_n set_v down_o inflict_a death_n upon_o the_o offender_n &_o yet_o the_o manner_n of_o death_n be_v not_o name_v genesis_n 9_o verse_n 6._o exod._n chap._n 22_o 19_o 20._o levit._fw-la chap._n 20._o verse_n 9_o 11_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o deut._n chap._n 20._o verse_n 25._o and_o 24_o 17._o all_o this_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n if_o the_o magistrate_n may_v not_o proceed_v against_o they_o ex_fw-la officio_fw-la without_o know_v the_o far_a pleasure_n of_o god_n for_o it_o have_v be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o no_o sentence_n of_o death_n have_v be_v set_v down_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o may_v as_o easy_o and_o with_o as_o little_a labour_n know_v the_o punishment_n in_o particular_a as_o when_o no_o punishment_n at_o all_o be_v express_v neither_o do_v the_o jew_n take_v themselves_o to_o be_v bind_v in_o that_o case_n to_o inquire_v of_o god_n levit._n 20_o 10._o deut._n 22_o 22._o john_n 8_o 5._o wherefore_o i_o rather_o think_v they_o consult_v with_o god_n about_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o work_n than_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o punishment_n god_n have_v threaten_v that_o whosoever_o do_v work_n on_o the_o sabbath_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o he_o have_v not_o follow_v his_o handiwork_n nor_o labour_v in_o his_o call_n he_o have_v only_o gather_v a_o few_o stick_n true_a it_o be_v he_o have_v do_v it_o impudent_o yet_o it_o be_v doubt_v full_a whether_o this_o fact_n be_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o that_o law_n or_o not_o and_o therefore_o moses_n will_v not_o call_v the_o life_n of_o this_o man_n in_o question_n without_o certain_a direction_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n for_o life_n be_v precious_a and_o blood_n be_v spill_v be_v as_o water_v pour_v upon_o the_o earth_n that_o can_v be_v gather_v up_o again_o so_o then_o they_o desire_v to_o know_v whether_o this_o fact_n be_v worthy_a of_o death_n not_o by_o what_o manner_n of_o death_n he_o shall_v die_v and_o as_o the_o jew_n in_o other_o thing_n be_v full_a of_o fable_n so_o in_o this_o they_o have_v devise_v of_o their_o own_o brain_n that_o this_o man_n be_v zelophehad_n ●nd_n ●ish_a fable_n out_o any_o ●nd_n of_o who_o we_o read_v afterward_o in_o this_o book_n chap_v 27_o 3._o where_o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o die_v not_o in_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o korah_n but_o in_o his_o own_o sin_n thereby_o cast_v a_o aspersion_n upon_o he_o and_o charge_v he_o with_o a_o imputation_n which_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o charge_v he_o withal_o of_o which_o we_o shall_v speak_v more_o afterward_o but_o who_o it_o be_v and_o what_o his_o name_n be_v and_o whether_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o israelite_n or_o of_o the_o stranger_n that_o come_v with_o they_o out_o of_o egypt_n or_o what_o his_o purpose_n be_v it_o be_v uncertain_a but_o whosoever_o it_o be_v he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o profane_v of_o the_o sabbath_n we_o learn_v hereby_o doctrine_n that_o the_o sabbath_n day_n ought_v whole_o to_o be_v spend_v in_o religious_a and_o holy_a exercise_n religious_o the_o sabbath_n day_n must_v be_v spend_v religious_o it_o be_v the_o end_n why_o it_o be_v sanctify_v of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v sanctify_v it_o and_o spend_v it_o in_o holy_a use_n from_o morning_n unto_o evening_n genesis_n chap._n 2._o verse_n 2_o 3._o where_o we_o see_v he_o bless_v it_o and_o sanctify_v it_o in_o the_o garded_n or_o at_o least_o in_o the_o time_n of_o man_n innocency_n exodus_fw-la chap_n 16_o 20._o esay_n 56_o verse_n 2._o &_o 58_o 13._o exod._n chap._n 20._o verse_n 4._o this_o be_v the_o practice_n under_o the_o law_n continue_v also_o under_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o synagogue_n on_o that_o day_n he_o do_v it_o not_o for_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o it_o be_v his_o ordinary_a and_o usual_a manner_n so_o the_o disciple_n act_n 20_o 17._o and_o 17_o 1_o 2._o 1_o cor._n 16_o 1._o revelat_fw-la 1_o 10._o the_o door_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v keep_v shut_v the_o six_o day_n but_o open_v from_o morning_n until_o the_o evening_n upon_o the_o seven_o day_n ezek_n 46_o 1_o 2._o there_o be_v many_o reason_n in_o the_o four_o commandment_n reason_n 1_o draw_v from_o the_o equity_n and_o liberality_n of_o god_n in_o give_v we_o six_o day_n from_o the_o example_n of_o god_n rest_n and_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o end_n why_o it_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v keep_v holy_a all_o these_o be_v of_o great_a force_n exod_n 20_o 4_o 5._o second_o this_o serve_v to_o preserve_v man_n from_o reason_n 2_o barbarism_n and_o atheism_n and_o all_o irreligions_n profaneness_n we_o see_v notwithstanding_o this_o comfortable_a &_o profitable_a ordinance_n of_o god_n how_o much_o impiety_n and_o looseness_n be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o if_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v unto_o himself_o to_o serve_v god_n as_o himself_o listen_v to_o his_o private_a devotion_n without_o this_o general_a observation_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v we_o shall_v short_o have_v no_o knowledge_n no_o faith_n no_o church_n no_o religion_n no_o order_n that_o the_o great_a part_n will_v scarf_n think_v of_o god_n from_o one_o week_n nay_o from_o one_o year_n to_o another_o or_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n or_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o pray_v unto_o he_o nay_o they_o will_v scarce_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o scripture_n or_o sacrament_n or_o not_o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o sabbath_n be_v a_o sign_n between_o i_o and_o you_o throughout_o your_o generation_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n that_o do_v sanctify_v you_o exod._n 31_o 13_o for_o when_o do_v the_o great_a part_n read_v or_o hear_v or_o confer_v or_o meditate_v or_o pray_v but_o upon_o the_o sabbath_n take_v away_o therefore_o that_o day_n you_o take_v away_o all_o these_o three_o reason_n 3_o christ_n jesus_n vouchsafe_v to_o honour_v this_o day_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o by_o his_o special_a appe●●ings_n in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o by_o his_o rise_n again_o upon_o it_o if_o we_o observe_v and_o mark_v it_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o show_v himself_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o follower_n upon_o that_o day_n especial_o first_o to_z marry_o magdalene_n early_o in_o the_o morning_n john_n 20_o 1._o and_o 14._o second_o to_o the_o other_o woman_n as_o they_o be_v go_v to_o communicate_v to_o the_o apostle_n the_o certainty_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o the_o angel_n have_v declare_v unto_o they_o before_o at_o the_o sepulchre_n matth._n 28_o 9_o three_o to_o the_o two_o disciple_n go_v to_o emmaus_n which_o also_o be_v the_o same_o day_n luke_n 24_o 21_o for_o they_o say_v it_o be_v the_o three_o day_n since_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v four_o the_o same_o day_n at_o night_n he_o appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n john_n 20_o 19_o five_o he_o appear_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o thomas_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o
aaron_n the_o saint_n of_o the_o lord_n psalm_n 106_o 16_o so_o that_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o ratify_v &_o confirm_v the_o priesthood_n by_o the_o swallow_a up_o of_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o by_o consume_v of_o korah_n and_o his_o confederate_n with_o fire_n all_o of_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o rebellion_n as_o they_o be_v call_v in_o this_o chapter_n verse_n 10._o but_o here_o we_o may_v behold_v a_o notable_a example_n of_o god_n wonderful_a mercy_n who_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o compassion_n then_o to_o revenge_v and_o therefore_o destroy_v some_o that_o he_o may_v instruct_v other_o wherefore_o in_o this_o chapter_n moses_n continue_v the_o same_o argument_n handle_v before_o and_o show_v how_o god_n once_o again_o establish_v the_o priesthood_n to_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n for_o a_o everlasting_a covenant_n whereupon_o he_o command_v that_o every_o tribe_n shall_v bring_v a_o wooden_a staff_n with_o a_o name_n write_v upon_o they_o &_o to_o put_v they_o together_o so_o as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v discern_v asunder_o but_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o name_n these_o staff_n thus_o prepare_v and_o order_v be_v lay_v before_o god_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o when_o they_o be_v take_v thence_o again_o aaron_n staff_n that_o have_v his_o name_n upon_o it_o do_v flourish_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n without_o any_o change_n remain_v dry_a and_o dead_a as_o they_o be_v before_o whereby_o the_o lord_n show_v that_o he_o have_v choose_v that_o house_n to_o serve_v in_o the_o priesthood_n chap_v 〈◊〉_d division_n 〈◊〉_d chap_v consider_v in_o this_o present_a chapter_n two_o thing_n first_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o priesthood_n to_o aaron_n and_o his_o snnne_n second_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o people_n and_o rest_v in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n after_o they_o be_v humble_v by_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n and_o see_v the_o flourish_a of_o aaron_n rod._n touch_v the_o first_o to_o wit_n the_o ratification_n of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o the_o decide_n of_o the_o controversy_n to_o who_o it_o do_v belong_v &_o aught_o to_o belong_v hereafter_o we_o must_v observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o moses_n and_o his_o obedience_n god_n command_v moses_n to_o take_v of_o every_o tribe_n a_o rod._n 16._o ezek._n 37_o 16._o now_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o several_a kind_n of_o wood_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o tribe_n or_o of_o one_o kind_n only_o to_o wit_n the_o almond_n as_o munster_n think_v it_o be_v uncertain_a num._n munster_n annot_fw-mi in_o num._n and_o the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v whereas_o every_o staff_n must_v have_v a_o name_n write_v that_o be_v the_o 12_o rod_n 12_o name_n what_o name_n be_v write_v some_o think_v that_o the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n have_v the_o name_n of_o reuben_n the_o tribe_n of_o simeon_n the_o name_n of_o simeon_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o tribe_n be_v write_v rather_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o tribe_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n do_v favour_v this_o interpretation_n v._o 2._o else_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v moses_n appoint_v to_o take_v several_a rod_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o every_o tribe_n so_o that_o for_o example_n the_o rod_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n have_v the_o name_n of_o elizur_n write_v and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n as_o they_o have_v be_v set_v down_o before_o ch_z 1_o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o 7_o 12_o 30_o 36._o for_o as_o the_o name_n of_o aaron_n be_v write_v upon_o the_o rod_n of_o levi_n not_o the_o name_n of_o levi_n himself_o v._o 3._o so_o no_o doubt_n the_o name_n of_o other_o prince_n that_o be_v head_n of_o the_o family_n of_o their_o father_n be_v write_v upon_o the_o rod_n of_o their_o tribe_n not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o tribe_n all_o these_o rod_n be_v lay_v up_o together_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n then_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o this_o token_n to_o assure_v they_o who_o the_o lord_n choose_v and_o ordain_v that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o more_o contention_n about_o the_o priesthood_n namely_o that_o his_o rod_n shall_v wax_v green_a flourish_n and_o bear_v blossom_n thus_o do_v god_n cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n of_o murmur_a among_o they_o speak_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o take_v of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o rod._n the_o people_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v thorough_o humble_v for_o their_o offence_n &_o to_o have_v their_o hard_a heart_n break_v in_o piece_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n judgement_n and_o miracle_n and_o so_o thorough_o to_o be_v move_v to_o reverence_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o priesthood_n but_o because_o god_n be_v constrain_v to_o work_v another_o miracle_n &_o to_o change_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o to_o call_v thing_n that_o be_v not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v it_o appear_v they_o be_v not_o yet_o sufficient_o touch_v and_o humble_v for_o god_n do_v no_o work_n in_o vain_a if_o then_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n have_v be_v sufficient_o confirm_v by_o the_o punishment_n take_v of_o the_o seditious_a and_o their_o partaker_n this_o new_a miracle_n have_v not_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o dry_a and_o wither_a rod._n wherefore_o god_n go_v about_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o remedy_v their_o pride_n and_o presumption_n and_o show_v his_o great_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n towards_o they_o in_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n and_o in_o cure_v of_o their_o infirmity_n we_o learn_v hereby_o doctrine_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v very_o desirous_a to_o have_v sinner_n convert_v and_o bring_v to_o repentance_n repentance_n god_n be_v desirous_a to_o have_v sinner_n bring_v to_o repentance_n that_o so_o he_o may_v save_v they_o esay_n 65_o 2._o ezek._n 33_o 11._o and_o 18_o 31_o 32._o math_n 23_o 37._o 2_o cor._n 5_o 20._o peter_n preach_v repentance_n to_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o prince_n of_o life_n and_o deny_v he_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o pilate_n when_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o let_v he_o go_v act_v 3_o 13_o 15._o even_o to_o these_o that_o murder_a and_o betray_v the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v the_o lord_n offer_v salvation_n to_o this_o end_n he_o be_v of_o such_o great_a patience_n because_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o any_o one_o shall_v perish_v 2_o pet._n 3_o 9_o the_o reason_n reason_n 1_o because_o first_o they_o be_v his_o creature_n and_o his_o workmanship_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n why_o he_o shall_v desire_v their_o good_a natural_a parent_n do_v desire_v to_o save_v and_o keep_v in_o health_n their_o child_n they_o that_o belong_v to_o god_n be_v his_o dear_a child_n esay_n 49_o 15_o 16._o he_o love_v reason_n 2_o israel_n as_o his_o first_o bear_v second_o he_o have_v not_o only_o create_v they_o when_o they_o be_v not_o but_o also_o redeem_v they_o when_o they_o be_v lose_v and_o that_o with_o no_o less_o price_n then_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o own_o son_n col._n 1_o 20._o 1_o joh._n 1_o 7._o ro._n 5_o 9_o 10._o if_o then_o he_o have_v do_v this_o for_o they_o doubtless_o he_o will_v go_v forward_o with_o his_o love_n towards_o they_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o they_o that_o be_v fall_v seek_v they_o that_o be_v lose_v quicken_v they_o that_o be_v dead_a and_o bring_v they_o home_o that_o be_v reason_n 3_o stranger_n to_o he_o three_o it_o be_v more_o honour_n to_o god_n to_o convert_v and_o save_v then_o to_o destroy_v and_o cast_v away_o his_o people_n doubt_v not_o but_o be_v well_o assure_v that_o god_n will_v do_v that_o which_o tend_v most_o to_o his_o own_o glory_n rom._n 11_o 1_o 2._o justice_n and_o judgement_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v fear_v but_o his_o mercy_n and_o love_n be_v that_o which_o make_v he_o to_o be_v honour_v of_o man_n use_v 1_o the_o use_n remain_v have_v god_n a_o earnest_a desire_n to_o convert_v and_o save_v man_n then_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v our_o desire_n to_o be_v like_a in_o this_o to_o our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o be_v to_o labour_v to_o convert_v and_o bring_v home_n other_o unto_o god_n that_o go_v astray_o from_o he_o for_o in_o so_o do_v we_o shall_v follow_v the_o footstep_n and_o example_n of_o god_n deal_v with_o our_o brethren_n in_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n as_o god_n have_v deal_v with_o us._n let_v the_o husband_n labour_n to_o convert_v the_o wife_n 16._o 1_o cor._n 7_o 16._o and_o the_o wife_n to_o win_v her_o husband_n the_o parent_n their_o child_n and_o the_o child_n their_o parent_n and_o every_o one_o to_o convert_v his_o brother_n a_o duty_n most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o most_o profitable_a to_o other_o a_o
argument_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n great_a love_n than_o this_o can_v no_o man_n show_v so_o say_v christ_n to_o peter_n when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n luke_n 22_o 32._o jam._n 5_o 19_o 20._o second_o this_o serve_v to_o condemn_v the_o use_n 2_o practice_n of_o many_o man_n in_o our_o time_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o god_n and_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n to_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v his_o child_n and_o bear_v his_o image_n god_n be_v desirous_a to_o seek_v out_o and_o to_o save_v they_o that_o be_v lose_v 1●_n luke_n 13_o 1●_n like_o the_o good_a shepherd_n that_o leave_v 99_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n careless_a in_o this_o duty_n few_o do_v think_v it_o to_o belong_v unto_o they_o other_o be_v so_o far_o from_o seek_v to_o convert_v that_o they_o rather_o seek_v to_o subvert_v other_o and_o of_o these_o the_o number_n be_v far_o great_a than_o of_o the_o former_a who_o do_v cross_v by_o all_o mean_v they_o can_v the_o purpose_n and_o desire_v of_o god_n he_o labour_v to_o save_v and_o they_o to_o destroy_v he_o to_o build_v and_o they_o to_o pull_v down_o he_o to_o plant_v and_o they_o to_o root_v up_o he_o to_o bring_v to_o heaven_n and_o they_o to_o hell_n these_o be_v of_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o his_o lust_n they_o do_v they_o join_v with_o he_o they_o labour_v for_o he_o they_o advance_v and_o enlarge_v his_o kingdom_n and_o they_o seek_v to_o bring_v more_o unto_o he_o this_o be_v a_o fearful_a sin_n which_o we_o must_v repent_v of_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v repent_v of_o it_o when_o it_o be_v too_o late_o last_o this_o must_v teach_v every_o one_o to_o have_v a_o use_n 3_o special_a care_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n see_v god_n be_v so_o desirous_a of_o it_o for_o every_o man_n shall_v be_v more_o careful_a of_o his_o own_o good_a than_o another_o or_o of_o another_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o body_n it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v so_o in_o the_o soul_n we_o can_v be_v more_o careful_a of_o our_o own_o salvation_n than_o god_n be_v &_o therefore_o see_v he_o be_v so_o desirous_a of_o it_o let_v every_o man_n labour_n to_o do_v what_o in_o he_o lie_v towards_o his_o conversion_n that_o so_o god_n may_v accept_v of_o he_o but_o some_o will_v say_v object_n it_o lie_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o convert_v myself_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o until_o it_o please_v god_n to_o work_v it_o i_o answer_v answer_v do_v that_o which_o be_v in_o thy_o power_n and_o god_n will_v give_v a_o blessing_n it_o lie_v in_o thy_o power_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o attend_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o it_o come_v diligent_o and_o constant_o to_o the_o place_n of_o god_n worship_n &_o god_n will_v work_v in_o thou_o his_o grace_n to_o thy_o conversion_n if_o thou_o do_v not_o never_o accuse_v god_n but_o the_o frowardness_n of_o thy_o own_o will_n which_o fail_v in_o that_o which_o thou_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v for_o if_o we_o say_v we_o desire_v salvation_n and_o yet_o despise_v the_o mean_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o on_o the_o other_o side_n from_o hence_o arise_v matter_n of_o special_a comfort_n to_o every_o one_o that_o true_o endevore_v his_o own_o salvation_n and_o can_v make_v enquiry_n into_o his_o estate_n whether_o he_o be_v one_o of_o that_o number_n that_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o not_o for_o although_o he_o be_v clog_v with_o many_o sin_n and_o daily_o add_v more_o unto_o the_o burden_n yet_o let_v he_o not_o despair_v nor_o think_v they_o shall_v hinder_v his_o salvation_n this_o be_v his_o comfort_n that_o with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a and_o when_o the_o desire_n and_o power_n of_o god_n go_v together_o how_o great_a soever_o his_o sin_n be_v he_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o doubt_v of_o his_o salvation_n let_v he_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n his_o merit_n do_v surmount_v all_o our_o sin_n 4_o and_o thou_o shall_v lay_v they_o up_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n before_o the_o testimony_n where_o i_o will_v meet_v with_o you_o 5_o and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o man_n rod_n who_o i_o shall_v choose_v shall_v blossom_v and_o i_o will_v make_v to_o cease_v from_o i_o the_o murmur_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n whereby_o they_o murmur_v against_o you_o 6_o and_o moses_n speak_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n go_v forward_o to_o declare_v his_o will_n to_o moses_n and_o foretell_v his_o great_a and_o miraculous_a work_n that_o in_o one_o day_n the_o rod_n shall_v bring_v forth_o bud_n blossom_n and_o fruit_n to_o stay_v the_o murmur_a of_o the_o people_n all_o miracle_n serve_v to_o some_o good_a end_n and_o as_o a_o kind_n of_o sacrament_n do_v confirm_v some_o doctrine_n these_o rod_n be_v not_o green_a and_o grow_a but_o be_v long_o since_o cut_v off_o from_o their_o tree_n and_o altogether_o wither_v 17._o ●●c_fw-la com._n ●●b_n 17._o and_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o be_v such_o as_o the_o prince_n for_o honour_n sake_n do_v carry_v when_o they_o execute_v judgement_n wherefore_o it_o be_v unpossible_a according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n that_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v fresh_a and_o flourish_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n for_o as_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o lay_v up_o together_o so_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o alike_o dead_a and_o without_o life_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o aaron_n rod_n flourish_v and_o by_o flourish_v the_o vigour_n of_o life_n appear_v to_o be_v in_o it_o it_o manifest_v apparent_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n if_o any_o object_n ●ection_n ●ection_n that_o the_o emulation_n and_o murmur_a can_v not_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v take_v away_o between_o the_o house_n of_o aaron_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n see_v his_o name_n only_o be_v write_v upon_o the_o rod_n and_o not_o the_o name_n of_o any_o of_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o answer_v that_o see_v god_n show_v forth_o his_o power_n almighty_a in_o that_o rod_n which_o have_v the_o name_n of_o aaron_n upon_o it_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a sign_n and_o infallible_a token_n that_o aaron_n be_v choose_v to_o the_o priesthood_n and_o that_o all_o other_o be_v exclude_v from_o that_o dignity_n and_o so_o the_o people_n confess_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap_a now_o whereas_o god_n in_o the_o flourish_a of_o the_o rod_n say_v that_o he_o will_v show_v who_o he_o have_v choose_v he_o declare_v that_o in_o bestow_v his_o gift_n and_o benefit_n in_o the_o church_n he_o do_v not_o respect_v any_o man_n merit_n but_o deal_v with_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n aaron_z be_v not_o advance_v to_o the_o priestly_a dignity_n by_o any_o virtue_n of_o his_o own_o but_o mere_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n so_o be_v we_o adopt_v and_o make_v heir_n of_o everlasting_a life_n not_o through_o our_o own_o work_n or_o merit_n but_o by_o god_n favour_n see_v it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o in_o he_o that_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n ro_n 9_o 16._o of_o this_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o chap._n 2._o v._n 18.19_o touch_v this_o miracle_n which_o god_n purpose_v and_o promise_v to_o work_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o israel_n we_o learn_v doctrine_n that_o god_n have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n wrought_v miracle_n against_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n he_o god_n can_v work_v miracle_n above_o nature_n when_o it_o please_v he_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o natural_a thing_n but_o he_o work_v extraordinary_o so_o often_o as_o it_o please_v he_o all_o time_n and_o age_n of_o the_o church_n witness_v this_o truth_n and_o testify_v the_o miraculous_a work_n of_o his_o hand_n in_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o moon_n in_o the_o air_n in_o the_o water_n in_o the_o fire_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o all_o creature_n both_o high_a and_o low_a thus_o he_o plague_v the_o egyptian_n psal_n 105_o 27_o 29_o 30_o 32_o 34_o etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o deal_v with_o his_o own_o people_n when_o they_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n psa_n 78_o 12_o 13_o 14.15_o 16._o levit._fw-la 9.24_o joshua_n 10_o 12_o judg._n 6_o 21_o &_o 13_o 19_o 1_o king_n 18._o in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o have_v sundry_a miracle_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o the_o miracle_n of_o all_o miracle_n accomplish_v which_o be_v prophesy_v long_o before_o that_o a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o bear_v a_o son_n esay_n
offer_v etc._n etc._n 30_o therefore_o thou_o shall_v say_v etc._n etc._n 31_o and_o you_o shall_v eat_v it_o in_o every_o place_n you_o and_o your_o household_n for_o it_o be_v your_o reward_n for_o your_o service_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n 32_o and_o you_o shall_v bear_v no_o sin_n etc._n etc._n moses_n speak_v both_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n speak_v first_o of_o their_o office_n and_o then_o of_o their_o maintenance_n for_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v they_o enjoy_v it_o for_o their_o service_n verse_n 21._o it_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o as_o their_o reward_n for_o their_o service_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n ver_fw-la 31._o now_o the_o levite_n be_v charge_v to_o deal_v true_o with_o the_o priest_n as_o they_o will_v have_v the_o people_n to_o deal_v true_o with_o they_o ace_n ●_o levite_n ●_o deal_v ●ly_o with_o priest_n ●e_z people_z ●_o with_o the_o ace_n they_o be_v to_o pay_v tithe_n out_o of_o their_o tithe_n to_o the_o priest_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o honour_n and_o labour_n who_o do_v as_o it_o be_v bear_v the_o burden_n and_o heat_n of_o the_o day_n and_o lest_o covetousness_n and_o greediness_n of_o gain_n shall_v make_v they_o base_a mind_a and_o hard_o heart_v he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o themselves_o shall_v be_v no_o less_o guilty_a of_o theft_n if_o they_o deal_v fraudulent_o and_o injurious_o with_o the_o priest_n than_o the_o people_n if_o they_o deal_v false_o towards_o they_o so_o then_o as_o the_o people_n must_v set_v out_o their_o tithe_n before_o they_o presume_v to_o use_v the_o rest_n so_o must_v the_o levite_n the_o tithe_n of_o tithe_n before_o they_o use_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o tithe_n we_o may_v observe_v from_o hence_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o equity_n whatsoever_o we_o will_v that_o other_o man_n shall_v do_v unto_o we_o we_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o unto_o they_o matt._n 7.12_o we_o be_v ready_a and_o forward_o to_o require_v good_a deal_n of_o other_o towards_o ourselves_o but_o slack_a and_o backward_o to_o return_v the_o same_o to_o other_o beware_v therefore_o of_o hurt_v and_o hinder_v any_o man_n in_o his_o body_n in_o his_o soul_n in_o his_o substance_n in_o his_o good_a name_n by_o cruelty_n by_o oppression_n by_o fraud_n by_o lie_v by_o slander_v this_o the_o darkish_a light_n of_o natural_a reason_n may_v teach_v we_o because_o we_o will_v not_o have_v other_o to_o defraud_v &_o to_o defame_v we_o to_o oppress_v we_o or_o to_o purloin_v from_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o deal_v so_o with_o other_o nay_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v good_a for_o evil_n and_o in_o all_o our_o deal_n one_o with_o another_o to_o proceed_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o love_n remember_v how_o we_o desire_v other_o shall_v deal_v with_o us._n duty_n doctrine_n a_o sin_n to_o reap_v the_o profit_n of_o any_o place_n and_o not_o to_o discharge_v the_o duty_n but_o the_o point_n which_o i_o will_v insist_v upon_o be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n for_o any_o especial_o the_o minister_n to_o take_v the_o profit_n and_o commodity_n of_o any_o place_n and_o not_o to_o perform_v the_o duty_n that_o belong_v thereunto_o esay_n 56.10_o 11._o ezek._n 34.2_o 3._o 1_o cor._n 9.13_o 14._o 2_o thess_n 3.7_o 8._o 1_o tim._n 5.17_o the_o reason_n first_o because_o profit_n be_v give_v reason_n 1_o for_o duty_n perform_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o thief_n before_o god_n and_o steal_v the_o benefit_n whosoever_o neglect_v the_o duty_n it_o be_v a_o sin_n therefore_o because_o it_o be_v injustice_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v make_v a_o bargain_n and_o take_v money_n upon_o it_o and_o yet_o afterward_o not_o perform_v his_o bargain_n like_v to_o that_o son_n that_o promise_v his_o father_n to_o work_v in_o his_o vineyard_n but_o go_v not_o matth._n 21.30_o every_o man_n will_v condemn_v he_o of_o wrongful_a deal_n so_o be_v it_o unjust_a and_o injurious_a for_o a_o minister_n to_o take_v the_o profit_n that_o shall_v arise_v out_o of_o any_o place_n and_o then_o not_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v require_v as_o belong_v of_o right_a unto_o it_o as_o it_o be_v to_o take_v a_o fee_n and_o to_o do_v nothing_o for_o it_o second_o this_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o the_o perish_a reason_n 2_o of_o many_o people_n both_o of_o himself_o and_o of_o other_o commit_v to_o his_o charge_n 1_o tim._n 4.16_o a_o faithful_a minister_n by_o do_v his_o duty_n do_v save_o both_o himself_o and_o they_o that_o hear_v he_o the_o unfaithful_a destroy_v both_o himself_o and_o his_o hearer_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v wrongful_a if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o he_o do_v destroy_v himself_o only_o it_o be_v no_o small_a evil_a to_o be_v a_o selfe-murtherer_n but_o when_o with_o himself_o he_o shall_v ruin_v many_o other_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v more_o impious_a last_o because_o in_o not_o perform_v his_o duty_n reason_n 3_o he_o do_v defraud_v the_o people_n and_o deprive_v they_o of_o that_o great_a good_a which_o the_o lord_n have_v bestow_v upon_o they_o and_o commit_v unto_o he_o to_o deliver_v and_o dispense_v unto_o they_o he_o have_v trust_v they_o with_o a_o great_a charge_n and_o will_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o same_o to_o their_o use_n 1_o tim._n 6.20_o 2_o tim._n 1.14_o if_o he_o that_o conceal_v and_o keep_v back_o temporal_a thing_n from_o his_o brother_n do_v offend_v the_o law_n exod._n 22._o then_o great_a be_v his_o sin_n that_o keep_v back_o spiritual_a thing_n from_o those_o to_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v and_o so_o much_o great_a as_o the_o difference_n be_v between_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a this_o serve_v to_o condemn_v the_o popish_a teacher_n use_v 1_o that_o live_v upon_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v merchandise_n of_o man_n soul_n we_o may_v tax_v these_o and_o arrest_v they_o as_o guilty_a of_o a_o horrible_a crime_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o foot_n from_o the_o pope_n the_o mighty_a to_o the_o priest_n the_o mean_a they_o be_v all_o idle_a belly_n and_o conspire_v together_o to_o destroy_v the_o people_n and_o happy_a be_v he_o account_v that_o have_v his_o hand_n deep_a in_o this_o sin_n for_o though_o many_o of_o they_o have_v goodly_a revenue_n and_o have_v fill_v themselves_o with_o the_o fat_a of_o the_o earth_n yet_o they_o live_v at_o pleasure_n and_o be_v no_o whit_n serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o who_o i_o may_v speak_v with_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 16.18_o they_o that_o be_v such_o serve_v not_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o their_o own_o belly_n and_o by_o good_a word_n and_o fair_a speech_n deceive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o simple_a the_o cardinal_n do_v scorn_v this_o office_n as_o too_o base_a and_o simple_a for_o they_o and_o choose_v rather_o to_o reign_v like_o prince_n then_o to_o rule_v as_o pastor_n and_o make_v more_o reckon_n of_o their_o purple_a than_o they_o do_v of_o their_o people_n and_o therefore_o turn_v over_o the_o toil_n and_o labour_n of_o teach_v to_o the_o parish_n priest_n whereas_o themselves_n not_o long_o ago_o be_v no_o whit_n better_o the_o priest_n consider_v that_o they_o have_v no_o calling_n to_o preach_v but_o to_o say_v mass_n and_o to_o read_v their_o portuisse_fw-la do_v pass_v it_o over_o as_o a_o thing_n impertinent_a unto_o they_o the_o monk_n which_o of_o ancient_a time_n labour_v with_o their_o hand_n live_v at_o ease_n and_o pleasure_n in_o their_o cloister_n and_o covens_n but_o do_v no_o good_a to_o other_o the_o abbot_n fat_a themselves_o like_o boar_n in_o their_o sty_n and_o be_v no_o way_n serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n but_o make_v their_o belly_n their_o god_n and_o their_o kitchen_n their_o heaven_n and_o their_o table_n their_o joy_n and_o the_o pope_n which_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a and_o govern_v the_o ship_n take_v no_o care_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o let_v all_o alone_a so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o all_o the_o rest_n follow_v his_o example_n use_v 2_o second_o to_o let_v these_o pass_v and_o to_o come_v unto_o ourselves_o it_o reprove_v all_o such_o as_o be_v content_a to_o reap_v the_o profit_n of_o their_o place_n and_o swallow_v great_a preferment_n down_o their_o wide_a throat_n and_o yet_o take_v no_o pain_n at_o all_o in_o teach_v this_o certain_o be_v a_o palpable_a sin_n howsoever_o many_o even_o those_o that_o be_v non_fw-fr resident_n already_o or_o will_v be_v open_v their_o mouth_n and_o set_v on_o work_v their_o pen_n to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o same_o this_o we_o all_o confess_v to_o be_v unlawful_a in_o other_o calling_n where_o notwithstanding_o the_o danger_n be_v not_o so_o great_a how_o then_o shall_v it_o be_v allow_v
angel_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v guide_v they_o the_o ark_n have_v go_v before_o they_o and_o manna_n from_o heaven_n have_v feed_v they_o yet_o now_o all_o be_v forget_v they_o believe_v not_o in_o god_n but_o tempt_v and_o provoke_v the_o holy_a one_o to_o anger_n and_o yet_o behold_v more_o provocation_n than_o these_o in_o these_o chapter_n follow_v where_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o they_o complain_v and_o cry_v out_o through_o scarcity_n of_o water_n and_o through_o weariness_n of_o their_o life_n when_o they_o be_v sting_v with_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o order_n in_o this_o chapter_n 1_o then_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n come_v with_o the_o whole_a congregation_n into_o the_o desert_n of_o zin_n in_o the_o first_o month_n and_o the_o people_n abode_n at_o kadesh_n and_o miriam_n die_v there_o and_o be_v bury_v there_o 2_o and_o there_o be_v not_o water_n for_o the_o congregation_n and_o they_o assemble_v against_o moses_n and_o against_o aaron_n 3_o and_o the_o people_n chide_v with_o moses_n &_o speak_v say_v but_o will_v we_o have_v perish_v when_o our_o brethren_n die_v before_o the_o lord_n 4_o and_o wherefore_o have_v you_o cause_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o come_v into_o this_o wilderness_n that_o we_o and_o our_o cattle_n shall_v die_v there_o 5_o and_o wherefore_o have_v you_o make_v we_o to_o come_v up_o from_o egypt_n to_o bring_v we_o into_o this_o miserable_a place_n no_o place_n for_o seed_n nor_o fig_n nor_o vine_n nor_o pomegranate_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o water_n to_o drink_v 6_o then_o moses_n and_o aaron_n go_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o assembly_n unto_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o fall_v upon_o their_o face_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n appear_v unto_o they_o 7_o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v 8_o take_v this_o rod_n and_o gather_v thou_o and_o thy_o brother_n aaron_n this_o congregation_n together_o chapter_n of_o this_o r●_n and_o the_o water_n gush_v out_o of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d more_o bef●●_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n that_o you_o may_v speak_v unto_o this_o rock_n before_o their_o eye_n and_o it_o shall_v give_v forth_o his_o water_n and_o thou_o shall_v bring_v they_o water_n out_o of_o this_o rock_n so_o thou_o shall_v give_v this_o congregation_n and_o their_o cattle_n drink_v 9_o then_o moses_n take_v that_o rod_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o command_v he_o 10_o and_o moses_n and_o aaron_n cause_v the_o congregation_n to_o assemble_v together_o before_o that_o rock_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o hear_v now_o o_o you_o rebel_n shall_v we_o bring_v you_o water_n out_o of_o this_o rock_n 11_o then_o moses_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o smite_v that_o rock_n with_o his_o rod_n twice_o and_o much_o water_n gush_v out_o so_o the_o congregation_n and_o their_o cattle_n drink_v 12_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o moses_n &_o aaron_n because_o you_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o i_o to_o sanctify_v i_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n therefore_o you_o shall_v not_o bring_v this_o congregation_n into_o the_o land_n which_o i_o have_v give_v they_o 13_o these_o be_v the_o water_n of_o strife_n where_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n strive_v against_o the_o lord_n &_o he_o sanctify_v himself_o among_o they_o in_o this_o chapter_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v three_o several_a thing_n first_o the_o murmur_a of_o the_o people_n second_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o israelite_n to_o pass_v towards_o canaan_n by_o the_o border_n of_o edom._n three_o the_o death_n of_o aaron_n in_o the_o mountain_n in_o who_o stead_n eleazar_n his_o son_n succeed_v and_o for_o who_o the_o people_n a_o long_a time_n lament_v all_o these_o particular_n be_v amplify_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n to_o wit_n the_o first_o month_n of_o the_o 40_o year_n after_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o egypt_n as_o appear_v chap._n 33_o 38._o and_o likewise_o of_o the_o place_n 14._o ●t_z 2_o 14._o of_o kadesh_n a_o city_n in_o the_o border_n of_o edom_n at_o which_o time_n also_o miriam_n the_o sister_n of_o aaron_n and_o of_o moses_n die_v these_o circumstance_n be_v set_v down_o the_o history_n of_o their_o murmur_a follow_v which_o we_o have_v often_o before_o see_v and_o consider_v declare_v that_o whensoever_o &_o wheresoever_o any_o adversity_n happen_v by_o and_o by_o they_o become_v impatient_a unthankful_a and_o forgetful_a of_o present_a mercy_n and_o favour_n a_o like_a history_n to_o this_o we_o see_v before_o exod._n 17._o which_o be_v not_o the_o same_o record_v in_o this_o place_n but_o differ_v in_o time_n &_o place_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o collation_n &_o conference_n of_o both_o the_o place_n now_o let_v we_o mark_v their_o behaviour_n in_o this_o want_n of_o water_n in_o the_o wilderness_n first_o they_o wish_v they_o have_v die_v by_o the_o stroke_n of_o god_n hand_n with_o the_o seditious_a rout_n of_o rebel_n that_o conspire_v against_o god_n who_o notwithstanding_o they_o call_v their_o brethren_n second_o they_o expostulate_v with_o moses_n and_o aaron_n that_o they_o have_v bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n into_o the_o wilderness_n be_v barren_a without_o fruit_n miserable_a without_o harvest_n and_o dry_a without_o water_n whereas_o they_o shall_v comfort_v themselves_o in_o the_o former_a mercy_n of_o god_n rest_n in_o the_o experience_n of_o his_o power_n and_o remember_v his_o help_n ever_o ready_a in_o time_n of_o need_n they_o rise_v up_o against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n in_o show_n but_o in_o deed_n against_o god_n who_o they_o serve_v set_v down_o their_o present_a condition_n and_o compare_v their_o abode_n in_o egypt_n where_o they_o have_v taste_v all_o misery_n feel_v all_o oppression_n and_o groan_v under_o the_o heavy_a burden_n with_o their_o present_a estate_n to_o amplify_v the_o woe_n and_o wretchedness_n thereof_o such_o be_v their_o blindness_n and_o unthankfulness_n 3._o umb_o 12_o 3._o but_o what_o do_v moses_n who_o meek_a and_o patient_a spirit_n they_o greeve_v and_o who_o righteous_a soul_n they_o vex_v from_o day_n to_o day_n with_o their_o ungodly_a murmur_n he_o do_v not_o here_o turn_v himself_o to_o they_o nor_o deal_v with_o they_o to_o reclaim_v they_o as_o he_o do_v chapter_n 16._o but_z go_v with_o aaron_n to_o god_n fly_v to_o the_o tabernacle_n as_o to_o a_o sanctuary_n throw_v down_o themselves_o on_o their_o face_n and_o comfort_v themselves_o in_o his_o power_n presence_n and_o protection_n who_o be_v always_o near_o to_o they_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o show_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o command_v they_o to_o take_v the_o rod_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o rock_n promise_v they_o water_n and_o assure_v they_o of_o a_o happy_a issue_n of_o all_o their_o trouble_n &_o necessity_n now_o as_o god_n command_v so_o moses_n obey_v and_o take_v the_o rod._n here_o a_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v question_n question_n what_o rod_n god_n mean_v and_o moses_n take_v for_o we_o read_v of_o two_o rod_n famous_a among_o they_o and_o well_o know_v one_o the_o rod_n of_o moses_n that_o he_o use_v when_o he_o keep_v sheep_n in_o the_o land_n of_o midian_a 4._o exod._n 4_o 2_o 3_o &_o 7_o 8_o 19_o &_o 14_o 1●_n and_o 17_o 5._o numb_a 17_o 8._o hebr._n 7_o 4._o whereby_o he_o wrought_v afterward_o many_o miracle_n in_o egypt_n and_o at_o the_o red_a sea_n &_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o other_o the_o rod_n of_o aaron_n which_o do_v bud_n and_o bear_v blossom_n to_o confirm_v the_o call_n of_o aaron_n and_o to_o declare_v that_o god_n have_v separate_v the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n to_o serve_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n i_o answer_v answer_v we_o be_v to_o understand_v in_o this_o place_n rather_o the_o flourish_a rod_n of_o aaron_n first_o because_o moses_n make_v mention_v of_o this_o in_o the_o last_o place_n not_o long_o before_o to_o wit_n chap._n 17_o the_o other_o be_v not_o speak_v off_o in_o this_o book_n so_o that_o we_o be_v rather_o to_o refer_v it_o to_o aaron_n rod_n before_o specify_v then_o to_o the_o other_o not_o name_v second_o this_o serve_v more_o fit_o and_o full_o to_o confirm_v their_o call_n of_o rule_n and_o government_n over_o the_o people_n which_o by_o these_o conspirator_n be_v call_v into_o question_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v do_v you_o doubt_v of_o our_o call_n &_o ask_v by_o what_o authority_n we_o do_v these_o thing_n behold_v this_o rod_n do_v you_o not_o know_v it_o this_o flourish_a rod_n shall_v convince_v you_o and_o serve_v to_o bear_v witness_n against_o you_o three_o moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v flee_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n verse_n 6_o now_o chap._n 17_o 10._o it_o be_v
not_o deal_v faithful_o with_o his_o people_n such_o as_o either_o hide_v the_o truth_n or_o withhold_v it_o in_o unrighteousness_n such_o as_o conceal_v or_o corrupt_v the_o word_n to_o please_v man_n undergo_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o the_o heavy_a wrath_n of_o god_n this_o appear_v in_o that_o charge_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v to_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n chap._n 1_o 17._o thus_o the_o lord_n deal_v also_o with_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n chap._n 3.18_o and_o 33_o 6._o so_o the_o apostle_n say_v a_o necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o i_o and_o woe_n unto_o i_o if_o i_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n 1_o cor._n 9_o 16._o use_v 1_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v now_o to_o be_v handle_v first_o of_o all_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o must_v know_v the_o scripture_n they_o must_v not_o be_v young_a plant_n idol_n shepherd_n blind_a guide_n dumb_a dog_n sleepy_a watchman_n unsavoury_a salt_n which_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o but_o for_o the_o dunghill_n if_o for_o the_o dunghill_n luk._n 14_o 35._o mat._n 5_o 13._o it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o a_o guide_n not_o to_o know_v the_o way_n for_o a_o seer_n to_o be_v blind_a for_o a_o messenger_n to_o be_v dumb_a so_o then_o all_o teacher_n shall_v make_v conscience_n to_o furnish_v themselves_o as_o wise_a scribe_n and_o good_a steward_n with_o profitable_a &_o competent_a knowledge_n spend_v their_o day_n in_o get_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v minister_v a_o word_n in_o due_a season_n and_o be_v able_a to_o feed_v their_o fellow-servant_n with_o wholesome_a food_n lead_v they_o to_o the_o fountain_n of_o life_n so_o then_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o function_n &_o call_v of_o the_o minister_n and_o god_n do_v disclaim_v and_o disavow_v such_o as_o be_v without_o knowledge_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v none_o of_o his_o pastor_n &_o teacher_n thus_o he_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n chap._n 4_o 6._o because_o thou_o have_v refuse_v knowledge_n i_o will_v also_o refuse_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v be_v no_o priest_n to_o i_o who_o will_v not_o marvel_v if_o a_o prince_n shall_v appoint_v a_o messenger_n or_o ambassador_n to_o go_v to_o a_o people_n which_o have_v no_o leg_n to_o go_v no_o tongue_n to_o speak_v no_o language_n or_o reason_n to_o deliver_v his_o message_n who_o then_o can_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a god_n the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n will_v appoint_v any_o to_o be_v as_o his_o mouth_n and_o the_o messenger_n of_o his_o will_n which_o can_v teach_v and_o deliver_v his_o will_n who_o be_v it_o that_o have_v a_o house_n to_o build_v that_o will_v choose_v such_o carpenter_n and_o mason_n as_o have_v no_o skill_n to_o lay_v a_o stone_n or_o to_o hew_v their_o timber_n or_o to_o handle_v their_o tool_n who_o will_v retain_v or_o entertain_v a_o shepherd_n to_o keep_v his_o sheep_n a_o husbandman_n to_o till_o his_o ground_n a_o captain_n to_o lead_v his_o army_n a_o steward_n to_o provide_v for_o his_o family_n a_o labourer_n to_o do_v his_o work_n that_o be_v altogether_o ignorant_a and_o have_v no_o knowledge_n to_o do_v these_o thing_n now_o god_n be_v more_o prudent_a and_o provident_a then_o mortal_a man_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v reject_v and_o refuse_v all_o such_o as_o be_v not_o able_a to_o discharge_v the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o through_o ignorance_n god_n require_v knowledge_n in_o all_o the_o people_n much_o more_o in_o such_o as_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o people_n which_o shall_v not_o only_o have_v knowledge_n themselves_o but_o teach_v knowledge_n to_o other_o that_o they_o do_v not_o perish_v for_o want_v of_o knowledge_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mention_v this_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a cause_n that_o religion_n perish_v among_o the_o ten_o tribe_n and_o that_o idolatry_n be_v erect_v and_o continue_v among_o they_o even_o until_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o to_o perpetual_a captivity_n in_o that_o jeroboam_fw-la make_v of_o the_o low_a and_o rude_a of_o the_o people_n 13.33_o 1_o king_n 13_o 31_o and_o 13.33_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n who_o will_v may_v consecrate_v himself_o to_o that_o call_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v never_o more_o dangerous_a and_o desperate_a and_o near_o to_o destruction_n and_o desolation_n then_o when_o they_o have_v blind_a watchman_n and_o such_o priest_n set_v over_o they_o as_o have_v no_o knowledge_n which_o make_v the_o prophet_n esay_n call_v for_o all_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n to_o devour_v they_o and_o all_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o forest_n to_o eat_v they_o up_o give_v this_o as_o the_o reason_n for_o their_o watchman_n be_v all_o blind_a and_o have_v no_o knowledge_n esay_n 56_o 9_o 10._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n teach_v that_o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n &_o the_o people_n seek_v the_o law_n at_o their_o mouth_n for_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n mal._n 2_o 7._o this_o therefore_o show_v and_o condemn_v the_o gross_a and_o grievous_a sin_n of_o many_o among_o we_o that_o occupy_v the_o place_n of_o pastor_n and_o can_v feed_v that_o run_v before_o they_o be_v send_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v light_n and_o yet_o be_v darkness_n these_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o their_o call_n because_o they_o be_v never_o design_v or_o call_v of_o god_n to_o this_o place_n for_o whosoever_o he_o call_v to_o any_o function_n he_o enable_v in_o some_o measure_n to_o discharge_v the_o duty_n which_o he_o have_v require_v of_o they_o they_o endanger_z their_o own_o soul_n &_o the_o soul_n of_o many_o other_o for_o when_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a both_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n ezekiel_n greg._n hom_n 11._o in_o ezekiel_n and_o one_o say_v true_o that_o we_o murder_v the_o soul_n of_o such_o as_o we_o see_v run_v the_o way_n of_o destruction_n when_o we_o be_v careless_a and_o hold_v our_o peace_n use_v 2_o second_o it_o behove_v all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o make_v conscience_n to_o deliver_v the_o truth_n and_o all_o the_o truth_n unto_o the_o people_n howsoever_o it_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o john_n answer_v unto_o they_o and_o say_v whether_o it_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o obey_v you_o rather_o than_o god_n judge_v you_o for_o we_o can_v but_o speak_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v act_v 4_o 19_o 20._o and_o paul_n exhort_v the_o elder_n and_o overseer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n set_v before_o their_o eye_n his_o own_o practice_n that_o he_o have_v keep_v back_o nothing_o that_o be_v profitable_a but_o have_v show_v they_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n i_o take_v you_o to_o record_v this_o day_n that_o i_o be_o pure_a from_o the_o blood_n of_o all_o man_n for_o i_o have_v conceal_v nothing_o but_o have_v reveal_v unto_o you_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n act_v 20_o 20_o 26_o 27._o if_o we_o be_v careful_a and_o conscionable_a in_o do_v this_o duty_n faithful_o to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n we_o shall_v reap_v and_o receive_v more_o sound_a comfort_n thereby_o then_o by_o the_o powerful_a effect_n of_o our_o ministry_n true_a it_o be_v all_o painful_a teacher_n esteem_v nothing_o more_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o of_o the_o people_n who_o they_o have_v gain_v to_o god_n and_o godliness_n account_v they_o their_o joy_n &_o their_o crown_n 20._o 1._o th._n 2_o 19_o 20._o and_o their_o glory_n and_o yet_o we_o may_v reap_v more_o true_a comfort_n and_o consolation_n by_o discharge_v our_o duty_n careful_o then_o by_o save_v soul_n and_o by_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n if_o we_o can_v win_v whole_a kingdom_n to_o god_n for_o we_o may_v save_v other_o from_o death_n and_o convert_v a_o sinner_n from_o go_v astray_o out_o of_o his_o way_n and_o yet_o after_o this_o ourselves_o become_v reprobate_n we_o may_v be_v the_o sweet_a savour_n of_o life_n to_o life_n to_o other_o and_o not_o ourselves_o too_o god_n thus_o be_v it_o with_o many_o priest_n of_o loose_a &_o licention_n life_n under_o the_o law_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o judas_n who_o wrought_v miracle_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o convert_v soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n and_o thus_o no_o doubt_n it_o be_v with_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n that_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n what_o they_o shall_v observe_v and_o do_v like_v unto_o
careful_a to_o settle_v our_o conscience_n in_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o his_o name_n then_o to_o settle_v our_o estate_n in_o earthly_a and_o transitory_a thing_n remember_v that_o godliness_n be_v profitable_a to_o all_o thing_n and_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4_o 8_o and_o that_o if_o first_o of_o all_o we_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n all_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v minister_v unto_o we_o matth._n 6_o verse_n 33._o last_o it_o serve_v to_o reproove_v mere_a civil_a use_v 3_o man_n that_o regard_v nothing_o but_o to_o live_v civil_o among_o man_n but_o never_o regard_v to_o know_v god_n &_o to_o glorify_v his_o name_n so_o far_o do_v the_o turk_n &_o infidel_n go_v but_o except_o our_o righteousness_n exceed_v they_o we_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n our_o first_o and_o chief_a care_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o religion_n but_o these_o have_v no_o care_n of_o it_o at_o all_o they_o regard_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n you_o shall_v offer_v unto_o the_o lord_n two_o lamb_n of_o a_o year_n old_a one_o in_o the_o morning_n &_o the_o other_o at_o even_o touch_v the_o law_n of_o a_o holy_a nature_n some_o be_v appoint_v as_o necessary_a for_o they_o to_o observe_v and_o some_o voluntary_a touch_v the_o necessary_a law_n they_o be_v of_o four_o sort_n some_o be_v daily_a some_o weekly_a some_o monthly_a &_o some_o yearly_a or_o rather_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o moses_n speak_v here_o of_o four_o sort_n of_o oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n first_o of_o such_o as_o be_v offer_v every_o day_n second_o of_o such_o as_o be_v offer_v every_o week_n three_o of_o such_o as_o be_v offer_v every_o month_n last_o of_o such_o as_o be_v offer_v every_o year_n touch_v the_o voluntary_a we_o shall_v speak_v afterward_o chap._n 30._o the_o holy_a time_n that_o concern_v every_o day_n be_v the_o morning_n and_o evening_n sacrifice_v offer_v daily_o the_o weekly_a holy_a time_n be_v touch_v the_o sabbath_n the_o monthly_a be_v touch_v the_o calends_n or_o first_o day_n of_o every_o month_n the_o yearly_a be_v touch_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o passeover_n of_o pentecost_n of_o trumpet_n of_o humiliation_n and_o of_o the_o tabernacle_n all_o these_o law_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n before_o handle_v while_o the_o people_n abode_n at_o mount_n sinai_n if_o any_o ask_v the_o question_n quest_n quest_n why_o then_o they_o be_v again_o here_o repeat_v i_o answer_v first_o answer_n because_o they_o be_v now_o come_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n upon_o the_o border_n thereof_o chap._n 27_o 12._o god_n will_v therefore_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o this_o repeat_v why_o th●se_a law_n be_v again_o here_o repeat_v that_o when_o they_o shall_v possess_v the_o land_n they_o must_v be_v mindful_a of_o his_o worship_n and_o their_o own_o duty_n second_o because_o few_o at_o this_o time_n remain_v alive_a which_o have_v hear_v or_o if_o they_o have_v hear_v can_v remember_v these_o law_n that_o then_o be_v publish_v &_o propound_v all_o be_v now_o dead_a except_o caleb_n and_o joshua_n which_o be_v number_v before_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 26_o chapter_n three_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n have_v be_v intermit_v in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o many_o year_n as_o circumcision_n josh_n 5_o and_o many_o other_o like_o ordinance_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o continual_a journey_n or_o at_o least_o continual_a expectation_n of_o they_o last_o god_n do_v hereby_o comfort_n and_o confirm_v his_o people_n after_o their_o manifold_a provocation_n and_o murmur_n testify_v thereby_o that_o as_o a_o merciful_a father_n he_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o they_o &_o the_o remembrance_n of_o their_o sin_n bury_v and_o that_o he_o have_v determine_v to_o do_v they_o good_a all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n now_o the_o first_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n us._n the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o use_n thereof_o to_o us._n in_o which_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v morning_n and_o evening_n a_o lamb_n fine_a flower_n wine_n &_o oil_n these_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v continual_o as_o a_o burn_a offering_n upon_o the_o altar_n which_o law_n be_v not_o to_o take_v place_n until_o they_o come_v into_o the_o land_n as_o we_o hear_v before_o in_o the_o like_a case_n chap._n 15_o 2._o because_o in_o the_o desert_n they_o want_v many_o thing_n necessary_a deut._n 12_o 8_o which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a dispensation_n for_o the_o omit_v of_o they_o for_o when_o god_n do_v require_v any_o thing_n he_o give_v mean_n to_o perform_v it_o and_o do_v never_o impute_v it_o as_o a_o sin_n unto_o they_o when_o a_o inevitable_a necessity_n do_v hinder_v they_o and_o the_o desire_n to_o obey_v be_v no_o less_o accept_v than_o obedience_n itself_o of_o this_o daily_a sacrifice_n with_o the_o rite_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v every_o morning_n and_o evening_n we_o read_v at_o large_a exod_a 29_o 38._o they_o must_v do_v it_o day_n by_o day_n continual_o so_o 1_o king_n 18_o when_o eliah_n convince_v baal_n priest_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o their_o choose_n dress_v and_o offer_v a_o bullock_n in_o the_o morning_n verse_n 26_o and_o of_o his_o do_v the_o like_a at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n verse_n 36._o likewise_o peter_n and_o john_n go_v up_o together_o into_o the_o temple_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o prayer_n be_v the_o nine_o hour_n act_v 3_o 1_o this_o be_v the_o time_n be_v three_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o afternoon_n when_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v offer_v unto_o which_o prayer_n also_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v join_v we_o see_v their_o practice_n what_o it_o be_v daily_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n towards_o ourselves_o first_o see_v from_o hence_o by_o consideration_n of_o use_n 1_o this_o daily_a offering_n a_o lamb_n every_o morning_n and_o a_o lamb_n every_o evening_n a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o this_o law_n as_o also_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o observe_v nor_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v observe_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v before_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n by_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o these_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n we_o have_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o be_v lade_v &_o burden_v with_o sundry_a ceremony_n and_o have_v a_o heavy_a yoke_n put_v upon_o their_o neck_n act_n 15_o 10._o which_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v as_o peter_n testify_v and_o such_o as_o be_v join_v with_o much_o cost_n and_o no_o less_o labour_n and_o trouble_v every_o foot_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o be_v unclean_a and_o put_v from_o the_o congregation_n and_o with_o many_o sacrifice_n and_o solemnity_n be_v purify_v again_o we_o have_v a_o few_o ceremony_n if_o we_o may_v call_v they_o ceremony_n only_a two_o to_o wit_n baptism_n once_o only_o to_o be_v receive_v which_o come_v in_o place_n of_o circumcision_n &_o their_o often_o purification_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o come_v in_o place_n of_o the_o passeover_n and_o the_o other_o sacrifice_n their_o meat-offering_n and_o their_o drinke-offering_n object_n if_o any_o ask_v why_o god_n change_v this_o form_n of_o his_o worship_n or_o why_o he_o abrogate_a those_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o whole_a leviticall_a service_n i_o answer_v answ_n because_o they_o be_v institute_v to_o be_v figure_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o shadow_v out_o his_o sacrifice_n heb._n 10_o 1_o 2_o etc._n etc._n 29._o piscat_fw-la in_o num._n cap._n 29._o for_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v so_o many_o testimony_n give_v of_o god_n that_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n to_o cleanse_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o they_o unto_o god_n wherefore_o he_o be_v come_v and_o his_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v those_o other_o sacrifice_n ought_v to_o cease_v and_o if_o now_o they_o shall_v continue_v they_o shall_v be_v no_o better_o than_o lie_v sign_n and_o false_a witness_n and_o testify_v a_o untruth_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n shall_v come_v hereafter_o and_o die_v for_o we_o who_o be_v already_o come_v and_o have_v dye_v for_o we_o once_o and_o can_v die_v no_o more_o rom._n 6_o 9_o and_o have_v fulfil_v all_o that_o be_v write_v of_o he_o if_o any_o do_v ask_v far_o object_n why_o god_n will_v over-lade_a the_o faithful_a in_o the_o old_a
conversation_n of_o their_o wife_n again_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v the_o wife_n to_o fear_v her_o husband_n ephes_n 5_o 33_o and_o peter_n teach_v the_o same_o she_o must_v have_v her_o conversation_n with_o fear_n 1_o pet._n 3_o 2._o this_o duty_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o help_v to_o set_v in_o order_n all_o other_o duty_n this_o will_v show_v itself_o in_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o the_o fight_n of_o god_n of_o great_a price_n and_o in_o obedience_n in_o all_o lawful_a thing_n &_o that_o not_o by_o constraint_n but_o willing_o and_o ready_o as_o serve_v christ_n without_o murmur_v or_o gainsay_v if_o they_o perform_v these_o thing_n they_o shall_v be_v christian_n wife_n and_o the_o daughter_n of_o abraham_n and_o sarah_n to_o their_o great_a comfort_n such_o will_v do_v their_o husband_n good_a and_o not_o evil_a all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n prou._n 31_o 12._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o solomon_n say_v a_o virtuous_a woman_n be_v a_o crown_n unto_o her_o husband_n prou._n 12_o 4_o but_o she_o that_o be_v stubborn_a and_o disobedient_a make_v he_o ashamed_a and_o be_v as_o rottenness_n in_o his_o bone_n a_o good_a wife_n be_v not_o only_o a_o honour_n but_o a_o ornament_n unto_o her_o husband_n and_o therefore_o be_v compare_v unto_o a_o crown_n of_o gold_n if_o she_o have_v be_v compare_v unto_o the_o ring_n upon_o his_o finger_n it_o have_v be_v a_o great_a ornament_n if_o to_o a_o chain_n of_o gold_n about_o his_o neck_n it_o have_v be_v a_o far_o great_a but_o behold_v while_o she_o keep_v herself_o in_o her_o place_n and_o discharge_v her_o duty_n with_o love_n and_o subjection_n she_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o crown_n unto_o he_o than_o which_o what_o great_a honour_n and_o glory_n can_v there_o be_v and_o therefore_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v house_n and_o riches_n be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o father_n but_o a_o provident_a wife_n be_v from_o the_o lord_n prou._n 19_o 14._o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o dwell_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o house_n top_n they_o with_o a_o brawl_a woman_n in_o a_o wide_a house_n prou._n 21_o 9_o and_o again_o a_o continual_a drop_n in_o a_o very_a rainy_a day_n and_o a_o contentious_a woman_n be_v alike_o prou._n 27_o 15_o and_o 19_o 13._o last_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o husband_n see_v use_v 3_o authority_n be_v commit_v unto_o they_o over_o their_o wife_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o bridle_n put_v into_o their_o hand_n to_o love_v they_o tender_o to_o defend_v they_o from_o evil_n and_o to_o cherish_v they_o as_o their_o own_o flesh_n as_o christ_n jesus_n do_v the_o church_n eph._n 5._o the_o heathen_a king_n can_v tell_v sarah_n that_o her_o husband_n be_v as_o a_o cover_n of_o the_o eye_n gen._n 20_o 16._o it_o be_v his_o duty_n therefore_o to_o dwell_v with_o his_o wife_n according_a to_o knowledge_n give_v honour_n to_o the_o wife_n as_o unto_o the_o weak_a vessel_n 1_o pet._n 3_o 7_o as_o be_v heir_n together_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o life_n that_o their_o prayer_n be_v not_o interrupt_v and_o why_o be_v they_o command_v to_o dwell_v together_o but_z that_o the_o husband_n shall_v yield_v to_o she_o these_o 4._o thing_n first_o good_a example_n second_o instruction_n three_o maintenance_n &_o last_o employment_n in_o her_o call_n for_o his_o good_a and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o family_n chap._n xxxi_o 1._o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v 2._o avenge_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n on_o the_o midianite_n afterward_o thou_o shall_v be_v gather_v unto_o thy_o people_n 3._o and_o moses_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n say_v arm_v some_o of_o yourselves_o unto_o the_o war_n and_o let_v they_o go_v against_o the_o midianite_n and_o avenge_v the_o lord_n on_o midian_a 4._o of_o every_o tribe_n a_o thousand_o throughout_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n shall_v you_o send_v to_o the_o war_n 5._o so_o there_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o thousand_o of_o israel_n a_o thousand_o of_o every_o tribe_n twelve_o thousand_o arm_v for_o war_n 6._o and_o moses_n send_v they_o to_o the_o war_n a_o thousand_o of_o every_o tribe_n they_o and_o phinchas_n the_o son_n of_o eleazar_n the_o priest_n to_o the_o war_n with_o the_o holy_a instrument_n and_o the_o trumpet_n to_o blow_v in_o his_o hand_n moses_n have_v take_v order_n for_o the_o church_n now_o come_v to_o the_o civil_a plantation_n and_o to_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o land_n this_o have_v be_v promise_v to_o their_o father_n gen._n 15_o now_o they_o begin_v to_o prevail_v and_o to_o receive_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o it_o to_o assure_v they_o of_o the_o full_a and_o final_a conquest_n of_o the_o rest_n observe_v in_o this_o chapter_n the_o history_n of_o the_o battle_n fight_v against_o the_o midianite_n chap_a the_o content_n of_o this_o chap_a who_o combine_v themselves_o with_o the_o moabite_n as_o we_o see_v see_v chap._n 25_o draw_v the_o israelite_n to_o whoredom_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o balaam_n when_o they_o despair_v to_o prevail_v against_o they_o by_o the_o sword_n by_o this_o mean_n they_o defile_v themselves_o with_o idolatry_n also_o and_o provoke_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o many_o thousand_o among_o they_o the_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v three_o first_o of_o the_o procure_a cause_n of_o this_o war_n second_o the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v follow_v &_o fight_v three_o the_o event_n and_o issue_n of_o the_o whole_a the_o first_o part_n be_v in_o these_o word_n wherein_o we_o see_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o preparation_n use_v to_o accomplish_v this_o commandment_n for_o moses_n send_v they_o forth_o and_o with_o they_o phinehas_n the_o priest_n &_o appoint_v soldier_n to_o execute_v that_o which_o god_n command_v out_o of_o every_o tribe_n object_n from_o this_o arise_v diverse_a doubt_n that_o be_v to_o be_v discuss_v first_o why_o do_v god_n command_v vengeance_n in_o this_o place_n that_o forbid_v it_o else_o where_o rom._n chapter_n 12_o verse_n 19_o deut._n chap._n 32_o verse_n 35_o answer_n i_o answer_v this_o may_v not_o seem_v strange_a unto_o we_o neither_o shall_v we_o think_v there_o be_v any_o change_n in_o god_n but_o we_o must_v know_v the_o difference_n and_o distinction_n between_o the_o revenge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o private_a man_n true_a it_o be_v god_n will_v have_v his_o child_n bear_v injury_n patient_o and_o to_o give_v place_n to_o wrath_n and_o to_o overcome_v evil_a with_o good_a rom._n 13_o 4_o yet_o he_o retain_v power_n to_o himself_o to_o execute_v vengeance_n against_o his_o enemy_n and_o never_o disclaym_v that_o office_n nay_o he_o challenge_v it_o as_o proper_a to_o himself_o for_o he_o will_v execute_v justice_n and_o judgement_n by_o himself_o and_o his_o minister_n so_o often_o as_o it_o please_v he_o numb_a 25_o 16._o so_o than_o albeit_o the_o faithful_a must_v bridle_v the_o desire_n of_o revenge_n and_o not_o retail_v like_a for_o like_a yet_o when_o god_n call_v and_o appoint_v they_o to_o be_v executioner_n of_o his_o will_n and_o wrath_n he_o put_v a_o sword_n into_o their_o hand_n and_o when_o the_o cause_n be_v just_a their_o call_n be_v lawful_a thus_o we_o see_v 3_o this_o be_v call_v the_o revenge_n of_o the_o lord_n verse_n 3_o how_o soldier_n be_v warrant_v to_o shed_v blood_n for_o they_o be_v call_v to_o be_v magistrate_n only_o it_o be_v require_v of_o such_o that_o they_o be_v carry_v &_o kindle_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n not_o with_o private_a hatred_n grudge_n and_o revenge_n which_o make_v a_o thing_n lawful_a to_o they_o unlawful_a second_o object_n the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v what_o be_v mean_v hereby_o that_o moses_n shall_v be_v gather_v to_o his_o people_n i_o answer_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v answ_n the_o body_n return_v to_o the_o earth_n the_o spirit_n to_o god_n that_o give_v it_o eccl._n 12_o 7_o for_o with_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a heb._n 12_o 23._o so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o abraham_n gen._n 25_o 8_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n and_o die_v a_o old_a man_n full_a of_o day_n and_o be_v gather_v to_o his_o people_n that_o be_v to_o his_o father_n gen._n 15_o 15._o so_o then_o hereby_o we_o must_v learn_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o abraham_n body_n be_v gather_v to_o the_o body_n of_o sarah_n only_o for_o he_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n with_o she_o so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o isaac_n gen._n 35_o 29_o he_o be_v gather_v to_o his_o godly_a forefather_n and_o of_o moses_n himself_o afterward_o deut._n 30_o 50_o as_o also_o of_o aaron_n before_o chap._n 20_o 24._o but_o it_o will_v be_v
and_o contain_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o these_o verse_n and_o the_o execution_n of_o it_o in_o those_o that_o follow_v in_o the_o commandment_n it_o may_v seem_v very_o strange_a objection_n why_o god_n will_v have_v the_o prey_n and_o booty_n divide_v between_o the_o soldier_n that_o have_v take_v it_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o israelite_n that_o go_v not_o out_o to_o battle_n for_o what_o reason_n be_v it_o may_z some_z say_v that_o such_o as_o sit_v still_o in_o their_o tent_n shall_v have_v as_o much_o as_o they_o that_o adventure_v their_o life_n or_o shall_v they_o that_o do_v nothing_o be_v make_v equal_a unto_o they_o which_o have_v bear_v the_o burden_n and_o heat_n of_o the_o battle_n i_o answer_v answer_v such_o as_o go_v not_o forth_o do_v not_o hang_v back_o of_o purpose_n or_o slip_v their_o neck_n out_o of_o the_o collar_n through_o fear_n or_o faintness_n but_o because_o they_o be_v not_o appoint_v to_o the_o work_n and_o no_o doubt_n while_o their_o brethren_n be_v fight_v moses_n and_o eleazar_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n be_v earnest_a with_o god_n in_o prayer_n as_o we_o see_v upon_o like_a occasion_n exod._n 17._o for_o god_n will_v have_v equity_n and_o justice_n observe_v among_o his_o people_n again_o a_o reason_n be_v render_v of_o this_o 1_o sam._n 30_o 24_o where_o the_o prey_n take_v from_o the_o amalekite_n be_v divide_v by_o david_n between_o those_o that_o go_v down_o to_o the_o battle_n and_o other_o that_o abode_n by_o the_o stuff_n and_o he_o teach_v it_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o common_a charity_n &_o equity_n to_o reward_v such_o as_o stay_v by_o the_o stuff_n who_o do_v no_o less_o intend_v the_o common_a good_a than_o other_o that_o fight_v the_o battle_n now_o here_o we_o may_v consider_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o battle_n and_o victory_n by_o the_o rich_a booty_n which_o they_o obtain_v with_o no_o loss_n at_o all_o as_o appeareth_z verse_n 49._o god_n therefore_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o these_o midianite_n deal_v most_o severe_o with_o they_o wherein_o they_o lose_v their_o good_n and_o themselves_o this_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o will_v destroy_v the_o wicked_a that_o provoke_v he_o severity_n doctrine_n god_n judgement_n be_v full_a of_o severity_n so_o when_o he_o do_v it_o he_o will_v do_v it_o fearful_o and_o severe_o psalm_n 50_o 22._o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o oftentimes_o use_v two_o merciless_a element_n and_o enemy_n which_o he_o arm_v to_o execute_v his_o will_n the_o fire_n and_o water_n which_o be_v without_o pity_n and_o compassion_n they_o spare_v neither_o young_a nor_o old_a as_o he_o destroy_v the_o old_a world_n with_o water_n gen._n 7_o jude_n 4_o so_o he_o destroy_v sodom_n by_o fire_n and_o will_v destroy_v the_o world_n again_o by_o fire_n 2_o pet._n 3_o thereby_o make_v it_o manifest_a that_o he_o can_v destroy_v sharp_o and_o fierce_o psal_n 21_o 9_o &_o 97_o 3._o and_o no_o marvel_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o ground_n thereof_o reason_n 1_o for_o first_o the_o lord_n lay_v even_o upon_o his_o own_o child_n very_o strange_a and_o fearful_a judgment_n as_o we_o see_v how_o he_o visit_v his_o seruamt_a david_n psal_n 32_o 4_o yea_o sometime_o he_o bring_v such_o heavy_a thing_n upon_o they_o that_z the_o ungodly_a take_v occasion_n to_o triumph_v over_o they_o if_o then_o he_o do_v it_o to_o his_o own_o what_o will_v he_o do_v to_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o reprobate_a proverb_n 11_o 31._o luke_n 23_o 31._o 1_o pet_n 4_o 17._o a_o servant_n may_v well_o gather_v that_o if_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n be_v so_o rough_a and_o rigorous_a to_o the_o child_n than_o he_o will_v be_v more_o sharp_a and_o severe_a towards_o he_o reason_n 2_o second_o the_o wicked_a grow_v obstinate_a &_o desperate_a they_o harden_v their_o heart_n and_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o all_o mean_n that_o may_v do_v they_o good_a they_o leave_v the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o he_o leave_v they_o be_v it_o then_o any_o marvel_n if_o god_n deal_v sharp_o with_o they_o christ_n our_o saviour_n put_v forth_o a_o parable_n unto_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n mat._n 21_o 35_o that_o the_o owner_n of_o a_o vineyard_n send_v forth_o his_o servant_n to_o his_o tenant_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o fruit_n of_o it_o but_o they_o abuse_v and_o kill_v they_o and_o his_o son_n also_o and_o then_o demand_v of_o they_o what_o will_v the_o lord_n do_v unto_o those_o servant_n they_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v just_a that_o he_o shall_v cruel_o destroy_v they_o thus_o they_o give_v sentence_n against_o themselves_o &_o show_v that_o such_o as_o grow_v obstinate_a against_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o people_n abuse_v his_o minister_n contemn_v his_o word_n and_o resist_v his_o ordinance_n can_v expect_v nothing_o at_o his_o hand_n but_o this_o that_o he_o shall_v destroy_v they_o in_o his_o wrath_n and_o sweep_v they_o away_o in_o his_o fury_n three_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n he_o be_v as_o reason_v 3_o a_o mighty_a and_o consume_a fire_n heb._n 12_o verse_n 29._o deut._n 4_o 29._o now_o we_o know_v that_o fire_n have_v two_o quality_n to_o purge_v and_o to_o consume_v he_o be_v as_o a_o consume_a fire_n to_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a to_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a he_o be_v a_o fire_n unto_o the_o good_a but_o a_o purge_n or_o purify_n fire_n to_o consume_v their_o dross_n as_o gold_n be_v purify_v in_o the_o fire_n 1_o pet_n 1._o but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o wicked_a he_o set_v aside_o his_o mercy_n and_o always_o give_v they_o judgement_n without_o mercy_n when_o he_o come_v to_o his_o own_o he_o come_v with_o judgement_n and_o mercy_n so_o then_o the_o point_n be_v very_o manifest_a that_o when_o god_n enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o the_o ungodly_a he_o will_v destroy_v they_o utter_o fearful_o final_o and_o full_o use_v 1_o this_o reprove_v those_o that_o walk_v on_o bold_o and_o presumptuous_o in_o their_o sin_n and_o yet_o never_o fear_v his_o judgment_n but_o dream_n of_o a_o god_n altogether_o frame_v of_o mercy_n and_o thereby_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o their_o sin_n and_o then_o run_v on_o in_o evil_a till_o judgement_n take_v hold_v of_o they_o and_o therefore_o moses_n exhort_v the_o people_n to_o obedience_n by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o work_n which_o they_o have_v see_v show_v that_o such_o as_o do_v bless_v themselves_o in_o their_o heart_n say_v i_o shall_v have_v peace_n though_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o my_o heart_n etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v he_o but_o his_o anger_n and_o jealousy_n shall_v smoke_v against_o that_o man_n &c_n &c_n deut._n 29_o 19_o it_o behoove_v we_o therefore_o to_o beware_v of_o abuse_v god_n mercy_n lest_o the_o curse_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o he_o blot_v out_o our_o name_n from_o under_o heaven_n and_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n of_o impenitency_n &_o harden_v ourselves_o in_o our_o sin_n because_o thereby_o we_o dishonour_v god_n we_o deface_v his_o image_n we_o make_v ourselves_o like_a to_o satan_n who_o by_o sin_n and_o disobedience_n we_o resemble_v our_o sin_n be_v as_o a_o thick_a cloud_n that_o separate_v between_o the_o lord_n mercy_n and_o we_o and_o hide_v the_o comfortable_a light_n of_o his_o countenance_n they_o provoke_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n against_o we_o 1_o cor._n 10_o 22_o they_o bring_v distrust_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o fatherly_a protection_n and_o weaken_v our_o faith_n in_o all_o his_o promise_n they_o bring_v temporal_a scourge_n in_o our_o body_n in_o our_o good_n in_o our_o name_n in_o our_o labour_n and_o grieve_v god_n spirit_n to_o cause_v he_o to_o depart_v they_o bring_v a_o wound_a conscience_n and_o weaken_v our_o assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o be_v encorage_v to_o proceed_v in_o evil_a because_o god_n be_v merciful_a second_o let_v no_o man_n fret_v at_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o obstinate_a sinner_n for_o albeit_o use_v 2_o god_n do_v long_o bear_v they_o with_o patience_n yet_o a_o fearful_a destruction_n shall_v be_v their_o end_n and_o reward_n if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v destroy_v after_o a_o easy_a and_o gentle_a manner_n as_o the_o grass_n that_o fade_v away_o yet_o even_o then_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o envy_v at_o they_o ps_n 37_o 1_o much_o less_o therefore_o those_o that_o shall_v cruel_o &_o fearful_o be_v destroy_v if_o a_o man_n shall_v have_v sentence_n to_o die_v the_o most_o honourable_a death_n that_o a_o state_n can_v afford_v as_o to_o have_v his_o head_n strike_v off_o yet_o for_o this_o no_o man_n be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o envy_v he_o though_o he_o be_v not_o burn_v or_o
off_o the_o pope_n but_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o leaven_n of_o superstition_n and_o savour_v strong_o of_o popish_a relic_n and_o remnant_n that_o remain_v in_o they_o these_o will_v tell_v we_o of_o the_o former_a time_n of_o old_a how_o good_a they_o be_v and_o what_o plenty_n they_o have_v then_o of_o all_o thing_n when_o they_o have_v the_o old_a religion_n but_o since_o this_o new_a learning_n come_v up_o we_o have_v have_v dearth_n and_o famine_n and_o penury_n of_o all_o thing_n these_o be_v like_o the_o jew_n jer._n 44_o 18._o since_o we_o leave_v off_o to_o burn_a incense_n to_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o drink_v offering_n unto_o the_o same_o we_o have_v want_v all_o thing_n and_o have_v be_v consume_v by_o the_o sword_n and_o by_o the_o famine_n 2.8_o ezek._n 16.17_o 18_o 19_o hos_fw-la 2.8_o but_o when_o we_o burn_v incense_v to_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n we_o have_v plenty_n of_o victual_n and_o be_v well_o and_o see_v no_o evil_n beside_o i_o can_v answer_v they_o that_o their_o prattle_a of_o plenty_n be_v a_o tale_n of_o idle_a brain_n for_o never_o be_v their_o hard_a time_n then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o superstition_n remember_v in_o qui_fw-fr maries_fw-fr day_n they_n make_v bread_n of_o acorn_n as_o some_o live_n can_v remember_v and_o never_o be_v god_n blessing_n more_o plentiful_a they_o in_o the_o day_n o●_n the_o gospel_n but_o be_v it_o all_o be_v true_a which_o they_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v a_o fall_v rule_v to_o measure_v true_a religion_n by_o the_o belly_n thus_o do_v carnal_a man_n savour_v nothing_o but_o carnal_a thing_n and_o prefer_v their_o flesh_n pot_n before_o manna_n let_v we_o therefore_o hearken_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 10.10_o phil._n 2.14_o against_o such_o solomon_n speak_v 7.12_o eccle._n 7.12_o say_v not_o thou_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o former_a day_n be_v better_a than_o these_o for_o thou_o do_v not_o inquire_v wise_o concern_v this_o use_v 2_o second_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o beware_v of_o unthankfulness_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o murmur_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n bid_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n there_o be_v not_o in_o any_o of_o we_o a_o unbelieve_a heart_n to_o depart_v away_o from_o the_o live_a god_n so_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o a_o unthankful_a heart_n to_o depart_v from_o he_o which_o be_v a_o capital_a offence_n and_o a_o mother_n sin_n sin_n vnthankefulnesse_n a_o mother_n sin_n job_n 34.18_o 19_o and_o that_o we_o may_v see_v what_o a_o ugly_a and_o misshape_a monster_n of_o many_o head_n it_o be_v let_v we_o consider_v what_o deform_a daughter_n it_o bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n verify_v the_o common_a proverb_n like_o mother_n like_o daughter_n ezek._n 16.44_o first_o it_o make_v we_o to_o prefer_v base_a i_o may_v say_v beastly_a thing_n before_o better_a and_o to_o lift_v up_o the_o earth_n above_o the_o heaven_n second_o it_o bring_v hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o make_v we_o without_o feel_v of_o good_a thing_n three_o it_o stop_v the_o course_n of_o god_n blessing_n &_o after_o a_o sort_n dri_v up_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o can_v stretch_v it_o out_o to_o do_v we_o good_a for_o who_o will_v bestow_v any_o thing_n upon_o a_o unthankful_a person_n four_o it_o make_v we_o like_o untamed_a heifer_n the_o more_o we_o have_v the_o more_o we_o spurn_v and_o kick_v against_o god_n like_o the_o pamper_a horse_n 32.15_o deut._n 32.15_o that_o lift_v up_o his_o heel_n against_o he_o that_o feed_v he_o to_o the_o full_a five_o it_o be_v a_o thief_n which_o take_v away_o all_o that_o we_o have_v and_o even_o rob_v and_o bereave_v as_o of_o such_o blessing_n as_o once_o we_o enjoy_v or_o as_o a_o violent_a fire_n that_o waste_v and_o consume_v whatsoever_o we_o have_v gather_v together_o for_o as_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n unlock_v god_n treasury_n and_o make_v way_n and_o passage_n for_o we_o to_o obtain_v more_o so_o unthankfulness_n shut_v the_o door_n that_o lead_v to_o the_o storehouse_n of_o his_o blessing_n nay_o it_o fret_v away_o like_o a_o canker_n whatsoever_o we_o have_v receive_v already_o six_o it_o bring_v down_o god_n judgement_n as_o it_o do_v upon_o the_o israelite_n sometime_o fire_n sometime_o plague_n sometime_o serpent_n and_o sometime_o one_o judgement_n and_o sometime_o another_o until_o they_o be_v all_o consume_v none_o of_o they_o escape_v unpunished_a for_o as_o solomon_n speak_v prou._n 17.13_o who_o so_o reward_v evil_a for_o good_a evil_a shall_v not_o depart_v from_o his_o house_n shall_v we_o sinful_a wretch_n so_o reward_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v do_v we_o good_a to_o do_v he_o evil_a seventh_o it_o blind_v our_o sight_n and_o pull_v out_o our_o eye_n that_o we_o can_v discern_v our_o own_o estate_n nor_o consider_v aright_o what_o we_o have_v it_o make_v we_o turn_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n behind_o we_o and_o to_o set_v the_o least_o cross_n before_o we_o it_o make_v we_o envy_v at_o the_o condition_n of_o other_o that_o they_o have_v great_a honour_n riches_n and_o live_n then_o we_o have_v last_o it_o exasperate_v man_n very_o much_o to_o see_v themselves_o to_o be_v evil_o reward_v and_o small_o regard_v at_o their_o hand_n to_o who_o they_o have_v do_v good_a as_o we_o see_v 1_o sam._n 25.10_o and_o 2_o sam._n 10.6.7_o how_o much_o more_o than_o do_v it_o provoke_v the_o most_o high_a and_o how_o careful_a ought_v we_o to_o be_v to_o beware_v of_o so_o foul_a a_o evil_a last_o if_o we_o will_v avoid_v and_o prevent_v this_o use_n 3_o sin_n of_o murmur_v to_o which_o we_o be_v so_o prone_a we_o must_v learn_v to_o be_v thankful_a to_o god_n for_o all_o good_a thing_n and_o continual_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o they_o come_v from_o no_o other_o but_o from_o he_o jer._n 5.24_o jam._n 1.17_o for_o as_o unthankfulness_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n refuse_v to_o give_v honour_n to_o who_o it_o be_v due_a so_o thankfulness_n testify_v our_o love_n fear_v faith_n &_o hope_v in_o god_n of_o who_o we_o receive_v all_o thing_n this_o duty_n have_v many_o branch_n for_o such_o as_o be_v thankful_a must_v acknowledge_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o confess_v with_o their_o mouth_n the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o so_o do_v the_o good_a samaritan_n heal_v of_o the_o leprosy_n luke_n chapter_n 17._o verse_n 18._o so_o do_v david_n psal_n 66.16_o second_o they_o must_v be_v patient_a and_o well_o please_v with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n though_o thereby_o our_o own_o will_n be_v cross_v and_o curb_v we_o must_v in_o silence_n and_o subjection_n to_o his_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a pleasure_n yield_v up_o ourselves_o and_o our_o whole_a life_n to_o be_v order_v by_o he_o psal_n 4.4_o and_o 29.9_o and_o 37.7_o esay_n 30.15_o and_o give_v the_o praise_n to_o he_o for_o they_o job_n 1.21_o because_o even_o in_o judgement_n he_o remember_v mercy_n hab._n 3.2_o in_o all_o our_o cross_n he_o show_v his_o love_n unto_o we_o and_o deal_v better_a with_o we_o than_o we_o deserve_v who_o may_v just_o cast_v we_o into_o hell_n fire_n and_o yet_o do_v we_o no_o wrong_n nor_o give_v we_o just_a occasion_n to_o complain_v against_o he_o three_o we_o must_v be_v content_a with_o our_o place_n calling_n and_o estate_n avoid_v covetousness_n and_o ambition_n phil._n 4.11_o heb._n 13.5_o four_o we_o must_v set_v our_o heart_n constant_o to_o obey_v god_n in_o poverty_n &_o penury_n in_o affliction_n and_o in_o all_o adversity_n phil._n 4.12_o heb._n 10.34_o five_o we_o must_v be_v ready_a to_o distribute_v &_o communicate_v the_o good_a blessing_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v unto_o other_o know_v of_o who_o and_o to_o what_o end_n we_o have_v receive_v they_o when_o the_o fountain_n of_o god_n mercy_n flow_v to_o we_o let_v our_o fountain_n be_v disperse_v abroad_o and_o river_n of_o water_n in_o the_o street_n prou._n 5.16_o when_o the_o cloud_n have_v drop_v down_o rain_n and_o water_v our_o land_n let_v we_o break_v our_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a and_o cover_v they_o that_o be_v naked_a we_o can_v never_o be_v true_o thankful_a unto_o god_n if_o we_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o do_v good_a to_o his_o servant_n for_o his_o sake_n last_o we_o must_v show_v ourselves_o thankful_a by_o yield_a obedience_n to_o god_n &_o by_o labour_v to_o please_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n this_o be_v a_o real_a thankfulness_n and_o this_o the_o lord_n look_v for_o at_o our_o hand_n this_o be_v the_o consummation_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o former_a and_o without_o it_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v of_o none_o effect_n verse_n 2_o 3._o and_o the_o people_n cry_v unto_o moses_n etc._n etc._n the_o fire_n of_o the_o lord_n burn_v among_o they_o etc._n etc._n
and_o he_o call_v the_o name_n of_o the_o place_n taberah_n here_o we_o see_v the_o punishment_n of_o their_o sin_n observe_v from_o hence_o doctrine_n doctrine_n that_o among_o other_o judgement_n of_o god_n iudge●●●ts_n 〈◊〉_d be_v one_o of_o ●●●s_a iudge●●●ts_n fire_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o one_o thus_o he_o destroy_v sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n gen._n 19.24_o and_o burn_v up_o both_o city_n and_o people_n so_o a_o fire_n go_v out_o from_o the_o lord_n and_o consume_v nadab_n and_o abihu_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n because_o they_o offer_v strange_a fire_n levit._n 10.2_o eliah_n the_o prophet_n do_v call_v fire_n from_o heaven_n and_o consume_v the_o captain_n with_o their_o fifty_o 1_o kin._n 1.10_o the_o like_a we_o see_v afterward_o chap._n 16.35_o according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o psalm_n the_o flame_n burn_v up_o the_o wicked_a psal_n 106.18_o reason_n 1_o this_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o grievous_a and_o fearful_a judgement_n because_o we_o say_v common_o and_o true_o fire_n and_o water_n have_v no_o mercy_n and_o we_o see_v by_o never_o fail_v experience_n that_o it_o be_v so_o second_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o title_n of_o god_n express_v his_o nature_n that_o he_o be_v call_v a_o consume_a fire_n heb._n 12.29_o deut._n 4.24_o and_o 9.3_o use_v 1_o this_o teach_v we_o that_o if_o it_o please_v god_n to_o lay_v this_o judgement_n upon_o we_o at_o any_o time_n whatsoever_o the_o mean_n or_o instrument_n be_v whereby_o it_o come_v whether_o by_o negligence_n or_o wilfulness_n or_o by_o the_o immediate_a hand_n of_o god_n we_o must_v always_o lift_v up_o our_o eye_n to_o heaven_n and_o submit_v ourselves_o with_o patience_n to_o he_o we_o must_v not_o rest_v in_o second_o cause_n but_o acknowledge_v his_o providence_n and_o consider_v what_o be_v say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o lord_n consume_v the_o camp_n we_o must_v therefore_o no_o otherwise_o account_n of_o it_o use_v 2_o second_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n in_o this_o regard_n to_o serve_v god_n acceptable_o with_o reverence_n and_o godly_a fear_n 29_o 〈◊〉_d 2.28_o 29_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n to_o ourselves_o lest_o we_o forget_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n we_o must_v make_v no_o grave_a image_n or_o the_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v forbid_v 4.23_o 〈◊〉_d 4.23_o it_o be_v reason_n we_o stand_v in_o fear_n of_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v we_o sudden_o and_o to_o arm_v his_o creature_n as_o his_o soldier_n to_o consume_v we_o in_o a_o moment_n three_o it_o warn_v we_o that_o at_o the_o last_o day_n use_v 3_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v consume_v with_o fire_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o heat_n and_o the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v away_o as_o a_o scrolle_n see_v then_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v dissolve_v 3.11.12_o 2_o pet_n 3.11.12_o what_o manner_n of_o person_n ought_v we_o to_o be_v in_o all_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n look_v for_o and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n we_o never_o read_v nor_o hear_v of_o more_o burn_a of_o town_n &_o house_n they_o within_o these_o few_o year_n testify_v by_o the_o continual_a collection_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o such_o person_n as_o have_v receive_v loss_n that_o way_n it_o be_v a_o lamentable_a sight_n and_o move_v much_o commiseration_n to_o see_v a_o few_o house_n consume_v to_o ash_n these_o particular_a burn_n put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o general_a burn_a burn_n particular_a burn_n put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o general_a burn_n when_o all_o thing_n that_o worldly_a man_n so_o much_o esteem_v and_o for_o which_o they_o labour_v &_o gape_v so_o greedy_o shall_v be_v on_o fire_n what_o shall_v we_o so_o much_o delight_v ourselves_o in_o costly_a apparel_n bespangle_v with_o gold_n and_o silver_n or_o why_o do_v we_o dote_v and_o set_v our_o affection_n so_o far_o upon_o the_o treasure_n of_o this_o life_n which_o we_o know_v must_v all_o be_v burn_v up_o like_o stubble_n last_o we_o be_v hereby_o admonish_v of_o a_o more_o use_v 4_o terrible_a fire_n and_o ●●ore_o fearful_a spectacle_n than_o all_o the_o former_a for_o they_o be_v but_o as_o paint_a fire_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o last_o fire_n 30.33_o esay_n 30.33_o which_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o lord_n like_o a_o stream_n of_o brimstone_n do_v kindle_v it_o be_v a_o fearful_a fire_n fall_v upon_o sodom_n which_o burn_v their_o city_n to_o ash_n 2.6_o 2_o pet._n 2.6_o but_o their_o soul_n suffer_v the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n in_o eternal_a fire_n be_v more_o fearful_a 1.8_o jude_n ver_fw-la 7._o matth._n 25.4.1_o mar._n 9.44_o 2_o thess_n 1.8_o this_o be_v call_v everlasting_a fire_n which_o never_o shall_v be_v quench_v into_o this_o shall_v the_o reprobate_n be_v cast_v &_o be_v torment_v in_o those_o flame_n these_o plague_n be_v infinite_a unspeakable_a &_o incomprehensible_a without_o end_n without_o ease_n without_o intermission_n without_o remedy_n without_o profit_n other_o judgment_n have_v some_o good_a use_n &_o many_o time_n bring_v profit_n to_o the_o sufferer_n after_o they_o have_v be_v exercise_v by_o they_o but_o these_o shall_v bring_v none_o at_o all_o there_o shall_v be_v weep_a &_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n again_o when_o the_o people_n first_o murmur_v god_n do_v not_o punish_v they_o as_o appeareth_z in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la they_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v the_o law_n but_o after_o the_o law_n be_v give_v &_o knowledge_n shine_v as_o a_o candle_n in_o their_o heart_n to_o direct_v they_o god_n spare_v they_o not_o but_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o they_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o sin_v against_o he_o we_o learn_v hereby_o doctrine_n that_o knowledge_n &_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n receive_v into_o our_o heart_n increase_v sin_n and_o judgement_n judgement_n knowledge_n increase_v sin_n and_o judgement_n the_o servant_n that_o know_v his_o master_n will_v and_o do_v not_o prepare_v himself_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n so_o say_v christ_n of_o the_o jew_n 12.47_o luke_n 12.47_o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o cloak_n for_o their_o sin_n for_o ignorance_n do_v in_o some_o sort_n excuse_n that_o be_v make_v the_o sin_n not_o to_o be_v so_o great_a again_o reason_n 1_o all_o colour_n and_o excuse_n be_v take_v from_o such_o as_o have_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n 48._o joh._n 15.22_o luke_n 12_o 48._o they_o can_v say_v they_o know_v not_o 12.48_o joh._n 12.48_o the_o word_n shall_v judge_v they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n which_o they_o have_v hear_v this_o then_o teach_v that_o none_o sin_n more_o greevous_o than_o such_o as_o live_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n hear_v his_o word_n and_o receive_v his_o sacrament_n it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o they_o that_o they_o have_v never_o know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n then_o after_o they_o have_v know_v it_o 22._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 22._o to_o turn_v from_o the_o holy_a commandment_n deliver_v unto_o they_o and_o the_o last_o state_n of_o that_o man_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o 12.45_o matth._n 12.45_o again_o mark_v from_o hence_o the_o cause_n why_o judgement_n begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 11.32_o 1_o pet_n 4.17_o 1_o cor._n 11.32_o because_o here_o be_v the_o great_a light_n here_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v the_o great_a mercy_n here_o he_o have_v rain_v upon_o his_o own_o city_n while_o other_o place_n remain_v dry_a and_o wither_a as_o than_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o great_a mercy_n so_o they_o must_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o sore_a judgment_n 28.15_o deut._n 28.15_o last_o it_o stand_v the_o church_n in_o hand_n and_o every_o true_a believer_n to_o walk_v as_o wise_o in_o the_o day_n redeem_v the_o time_n 15.16_o ephes_n 4_o 15.16_o because_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a if_o the_o word_n do_v not_o work_v our_o conversion_n it_o shall_v further_o our_o condemnation_n and_o we_o make_v ourselves_o twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o other_o that_o have_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o such_o grace_n he_o call_v the_o name_n of_o the_o place_n taberah_n god_n do_v not_o content_v himself_o to_o punish_v their_o murmur_a but_o set_v up_o a_o memorial_n or_o monument_n of_o their_o sin_n tha●_n other_o may_v be_v teach_v and_o instruct_v by_o it_o to_o fear_n by_o give_v a_o new_a name_n to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o sin_n be_v commit_v call_v it_o taberah_n that_o be_v a_o consumption_n or_o a_o burn_a the_o like_a we_o see_v afterward_o in_o this_o chap._n ver_fw-la 34._o doctrine_n learn_v from_o these_o example_n instruction_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v both_o punishment_n and_o